diff options
Diffstat (limited to '2086-h')
| -rw-r--r-- | 2086-h/2086-h.htm | 10763 |
1 files changed, 10763 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/2086-h/2086-h.htm b/2086-h/2086-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..d42c187 --- /dev/null +++ b/2086-h/2086-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,10763 @@ +<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN"> +<HTML> +<HEAD> + +<META HTTP-EQUIV="Content-Type" CONTENT="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1"> + +<TITLE> +The Project Gutenberg E-text of The Slowcoach, by E. V. Lucas +</TITLE> + +<STYLE TYPE="text/css"> +BODY { color: Black; + background: White; + margin-right: 10%; + margin-left: 10%; + font-family: "Times New Roman", serif; + text-align: justify } + +P {text-indent: 4% } + +P.noindent {text-indent: 0% } + +P.poem {text-indent: 0%; + margin-left: 10%; + font-size: small } + +P.letter {text-indent: 0%; + font-size: small ; + margin-left: 10% ; + margin-right: 10% } + +P.finis { text-align: center ; + text-indent: 0% ; + margin-left: 0% ; + margin-right: 0% } + +</STYLE> + +</HEAD> + +<BODY> + + +<pre> + +The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Slowcoach, by E. V. Lucas + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + +Title: The Slowcoach + +Author: E. V. Lucas + +Posting Date: November 19, 2008 [EBook #2086] +Release Date: February, 2000 + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1 + +*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SLOWCOACH *** + + + + + + + + + + +</pre> + + +<BR><BR> + +<H1 ALIGN="center"> +THE SLOWCOACH +</H1> + +<BR> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +BY +</H3> + +<H2 ALIGN="center"> +E. V. LUCAS. +</H2> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<H2 ALIGN="center"> +CONTENTS +</H2> + +<H4> + CHAPTER 1: <A HREF="#chap01">THE AVORIES</A><BR> + CHAPTER 2: <A HREF="#chap02">THE SOUND OF MYSTERIOUS WHEELS</A><BR> + CHAPTER 3: <A HREF="#chap03">THE THOROUGH EXAMINATION</A><BR> + CHAPTER 4: <A HREF="#chap04">THE ITEMS</A><BR> + CHAPTER 5: <A HREF="#chap05">DIOGENES AND MOSES</A><BR> + CHAPTER 6: <A HREF="#chap06">THE PLANS</A><BR> + CHAPTER 7: <A HREF="#chap07">MR. LENOX'S YOUNG BROTHER</A><BR> + CHAPTER 8: <A HREF="#chap08">THE FIRST DAY</A><BR> + CHAPTER 9: <A HREF="#chap09">THE FIRST NIGHT</A><BR> + CHAPTER 10: <A HREF="#chap10">THE ADVENTURE OF THE SECOND CARAVAN</A><BR> + CHAPTER 11: <A HREF="#chap11">THE WAYSIDE FRIEND</A><BR> + CHAPTER 12: <A HREF="#chap12">STRATFORD-ON-AVON</A><BR> + CHAPTER 13: <A HREF="#chap13">THE ADVENTURE OF THE YOUNG POLICEMAN</A><BR> + CHAPTER 14: <A HREF="#chap14">THE ADVENTURE OF THE LITTLE OLD LADY</A><BR> + CHAPTER 15: <A HREF="#chap15">THE ADVENTURE OF THE RUNAWAY PONIES</A><BR> + CHAPTER 16: <A HREF="#chap16">THE BLACK SPANIELS</A><BR> + CHAPTER 17: <A HREF="#chap17">THE ADVENTURE OF THE LOST BABY</A><BR> + CHAPTER 18: <A HREF="#chap18">THE ADVENTURE OF THE OLD IRISHWOMAN</A><BR> + CHAPTER 19: <A HREF="#chap19">THE LETTER TO X</A><BR> + CHAPTER 20: <A HREF="#chap20">THE ADVENTURE OF THE LINE OF POETRY</A><BR> + CHAPTER 21: <A HREF="#chap21">COLLINS'S PEOPLE</A><BR> + CHAPTER 22: <A HREF="#chap22">THE ADVENTURE OF THE GIANT</A><BR> + CHAPTER 23: <A HREF="#chap01">THE MOST SURPRISING ADVENTURE OF ALL</A><BR> + CHAPTER 24: <A HREF="#chap01">THE END</A><BR> +</H4> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap01"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 1 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE AVORIES +</H3> + +<P> +Once upon a time there was a nice family. Its name was Avory, and it +lived in an old house in Chiswick, where the Thames is so sad on grey +days and so gay on sunny ones. +</P> + +<P> +Mr.—or rather Captain—Avory was dead; he had been wounded at Spion +Kop, and died a few years after. Mrs. Avory was thirty-five, and she +had four children. The eldest was Janet, aged fourteen, and the +youngest was Gregory Bruce, aged seven. Between these came Robert +Oliver, who was thirteen, and Hester, who was nine. +</P> + +<P> +They were all very fond of each other, and they rarely quarreled. (If +they had done so, I should not be telling this story. You don't catch +me writing books about people who quarrel.) They adored their mother. +</P> + +<P> +The name of the Avories' house was "The Gables," which was a better +name than many houses have, because there actually were gables in its +roof. Hester, who had funny ideas, wanted to see all the people who +lived in all the houses that are called "The Gables" everywhere drawn +up in a row so that she might examine them. She used to lie awake at +night and wonder how many there would be. "I'm sure mother would be the +most beautiful, anyway," she used to say. +</P> + +<P> +History was Hester's passion. She could read history all day. Here she +differed from Robert Oliver, who was all for geography. Their friends +knew of these tastes, of course, and so Hester's presents were nearly +always history books or portraits of great men, such as Napoleon and +Shakespeare, both of whom she almost worshipped, while Robert's were +compasses and maps. He also had a mapmeasurer (from Mr. Lenox), and at +the moment at which this story opens, his birthday being just over, he +was the possessor of a pedometer, which he carried fastened to his leg, +under his knickerbockers, so that it was certain to register every time +he took a step. He kept a careful record of the distance he had walked +since his birthday, and could tell you at any time what it was, if you +gave him a minute or two to crawl under the table and undo his clothes. +He could be heard grunting in dark places all day long, having been +forbidden by Janet to undress in public. +</P> + +<P> +Robert's birthday was on June 20, Hester's on November 8, and Janet's +on February 28. She had the narrowest escape, you see, of getting +birthdays only once in every four years; which is one of the worst +things that can happen to a human being. Gregory Bruce was a little +less lucky, for his birthday was on December 20, which is so near to +Christmas Day that mean persons have been known to make one gift do for +both events. None the less, Gregory's possessions were very numerous; +for he had many friends, and most of them were careful to keep these +two great anniversaries apart. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory's particular passion just now was the names of engines, of +which he had one of the finest collections in Europe; but a model +aeroplane which Mr. Scott had given him was beginning to turn his +thoughts towards the conquest of the air, and whereas he used to tell +people that he meant to be an engine driver when he grew up, he was now +adding, "or a man like Wilbur Wright." +</P> + +<P> +Most children have wanted to fly ever since "Peter Pan" began, and, as +I dare say you have heard, some have tried from the nursery window, +with perfectly awful results, having neglected to have their shoulders +first touched magically; but Gregory Bruce Avory wanted to fly in a +more regular and scientific manner. He wanted to fly like an engineer. +To his mind, indeed, the flying part of "Peter Pan" was the least +fascinating; he preferred the underground home, and the fight with the +Indians, and the mechanism of the crocodile. For a short time, in fact, +his only ambition had been to be the crocodile's front half. +</P> + +<P> +Janet, on the other hand, liked Nana and the pathetic motherly parts +the best; Robert's favourite was Smee, and often at meal times he used +to say, "Woe is me, I have no knife"; while Hester was happiest in the +lagoon scene. This difference of taste in one small family shows how +important it is for anyone who writes a play to put a lot of variety +into it. +</P> + +<P> +Janet, the eldest, was also the most practical. She was, in fact, +towards the others almost more of a younger mother than an elder +sister. Not that Mrs. Avory neglected them at all; but Janet relieved +her of many little duties. She always knew when their feet were likely +to be wet, and Robert had once said that she had "stocking changing on +the brain." She could cook, too, especially cakes, and the tradesmen +had a great respect for her judgment when she went shopping. She knew +when a joint would be too fat, and you should see her pointing out the +bone! +</P> + +<P> +Janet was a tall girl, and very active, and, in spite of her +responsibilities, very jolly. She played hockey as well almost as a +boy, which is, of course, saying everything, and her cricket was good, +too. Her bowling was fast and straight, and usually too much for +Robert, who knew, however, the initials of all the gentlemen and the +Christian names and birthplaces of most of the professionals. Gregory +could not bear cricket, except when it was his own innings, which he +seemed to enjoy during its brief duration. Hester thought it dull +throughout, so that Janet had to depend upon Robert and the Rotherams +for the best games. +</P> + +<P> +Janet had very straight fair hair, and just enough freckles to be +pretty. She looked nicest in blue. Hester, on the contrary, was a dark +little thing, whose best frock was always red. +</P> + +<P> +As for the boys—it doesn't matter what boys are like; but Gregory, I +might say, usually had black hands: not because he was naturally a +grubby little beast, but because engineers do. Robert, on the contrary, +was disposed to be dressy, and he declined to allow his mother or Janet +to buy his socks or neckties without first consulting him as to colours. +</P> + +<P> +Among the friends of the family must be put first Uncle Chris, who was +Captain Avory's brother and a lawyer in Golden Square. Uncle Chris +looked after Mrs. Avory's money and gave advice. He was very nice, and +came to dinner every Sunday (hot roast beef and horse radish sauce). +There was an Aunt Chris, too, but she was an invalid and could not +leave her room, where she lay all the time and remembered birthdays. +</P> + +<P> +Next to Uncle Chris came Mr. Scott, who was a famous author and a very +good cricketer on the lawn, and Mr. Lenox, who was private secretary to +a real lord, and therefore had lots of time and money. Both Mr. Scott +and Mr. Lenox were bachelors, as the best friends of families always +are; unless, of course, their wives are invalids. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, who was more social than Robert, also knew one policeman, one +coachman, three chauffeurs, and several Chiswick boatmen extremely +intimately. Robert's principal friend outside the family was a bird +stuffer in Hammersmith; but he does not come into this story. +</P> + +<P> +The Avories did not go to boarding school, or, indeed, to any school in +the ordinary way at all; Mrs. Avory said she could not spare them. +Instead they were visited every day except Saturdays by Mr. Crawley and +Miss Bingham, who taught them the things that one is supposed to +know—Mr. Crawley taking the boys in the old billiard room, and Miss +Bingham the girls in the morning room. At some of the lessons—such as +history—they all joined. The classes were attended also by the +Rotherams, the doctor's children, who lived at "Fir Grove," and Horace +Campbell, the only son of the vicar. So it was a kind of school, after +all. +</P> + +<P> +Horace Campbell had always intended to be a cowboy when he grew up, but +a visit to a play called "Raffles" was now rather inclining him to +gentlemanly burglary. William Rotheram, like Gregory, leaned towards +flying; but Jack Rotheram voted steadily for the sea, and talked of +little but Osborne. +</P> + +<P> +Mary Rotheram played with a bat almost as straight as "Plum" Warner's, +and she knew most of the old Somersetshire songs—"Mowing the Barley," +and "Lord Rendal," and "Seventeen come Sunday"—by heart, and sang them +beautifully. Gregory, who used to revel in Sankey's hymns as sung by +Eliza Pollard, the parlourmaid, now thought that the Somerset music was +the only real kind. Mary Rotheram had a snub nose and quantities of +freckle and a very nice nature. +</P> + +<P> +"The Gables" had a large garden, with a shrubbery of evergreens in it +and a cedar. It was not at all a garden-party garden, because there was +a well-worn cricketpitch right in the middle of the lawn, and Gregory +had a railway system where the best flowers ought to be; but it was a +garden full of fun, and old Kink, the gardener, managed to get a great +many vegetables out of it, too, although not so many as Collins thought +he ought to. +</P> + +<P> +Collins was the cook, a fat, smiling, hot lady of about fifty, who had +been with Mrs. Avory ever since she married. Collins understood +children thoroughly, and made cakes that were rather wet underneath. +Her Yorkshire pudding (for Sunday's dinner) was famous, and her horse +radish sauce was so perfect that it brought tears to the eyes. +</P> + +<P> +Collins collected picture postcards and adored the family. She had +never been cross to any of them, but her way with the butcher's boy and +the grocer's boy and the fishmonger's boy was terrible. +</P> + +<P> +She snapped their heads off (so to speak) every morning, and old Kink +spent quite a lot of his time in rubbing from off the backdoor the +awful things they wrote about her in chalk. +</P> + +<P> +The parlourmaid was Eliza Pollard, who had red hair and a kind heart, +but was continually falling out with her last young man and getting +another. She told Hester all about it. Hester had a special knack of +being told about the servants' young men, for she knew also all about +those of Eliza Pollard's predecessors. +</P> + +<P> +The housemaid was Jane Masters, who helped Eliza Pollard to make the +beds. Jane Masters did not hold with fickleness in love—in fact, she +couldn't abide it—and therefore she was steadily true to a young man +called 'Erb, who looked after the lift at the Stores, and was a +particular friend of Gregory's in consequence. No man who had charge of +a lift could fail to be admired by Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +Finally—and very likely she ought to have come first—was Runcie, or +Mrs. Runciman, who had not only been the nurse of all the Avories, but +of Mrs. Avory before them, when Mrs. Avory was a slip of a girl named +Janet Easton. Runcie was then quite young herself, and why she was +suddenly called Mrs. no one ever quite knew, for she had never married. +And now she was getting on for sixty, and had not much to do except +sympathize with the Avories and reprove the servants. She had a nice +sitting room of her own, where she sat comfortably every afternoon when +such work as she did was done, and received visits from her pets, as +she called the children (none of whom, however, was quite so dear to +her as their mother), and listened to their adventures. +</P> + +<P> +On those evenings on which he came to "The Gables" Mr. Lenox always +looked in on her for a little gossip; and this was called his "runcible +spoon"—the joke being that Mr. Lenox and Runcie were engaged to be +married. +</P> + +<P> +And now you know the Avory family root and branch. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap02"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 2 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE SOUND OF MYSTERIOUS WHEELS +</H3> + +<P> +One day in late June the Avories and the Rotherams and Horace Campbell +were sitting at tea under the cedar talking about a great tragedy that +had befallen. For Mrs. Avory had just heard that Mrs. Dudeney—their +regular landlady at Sea View, in the Isle of Wight, where they had +lodgings every summer for years and years, and where they were all +ready to go next month as usual—Mrs. Avory had just heard that Mrs. +Dudeney had been taken very ill, and no other rooms were to be had. +</P> + +<P> +Here was a blow! For the Rotherams always went to Sea View too, and had +a tent on the little strip of beach under the wood adjoining the +Avories', and they did everything together. And now it was very likely +that the Avories would not get lodgings at all, and certainly would not +get any half so good as Mrs. Dudeney's, where their ways were known, +and their bathing dresses were always dried at once in case they wanted +to go in again, and so on. +</P> + +<P> +They were all discussing this together, and saying what a shame it was, +when suddenly the unfamiliar sound of the opening of the old stableyard +gates was heard, and then heavy wheels scrunched in and men's voices +called out directions, such as, "Steady, Joe!" "A little bit to the +near side, Bill!" and so forth. +</P> + +<P> +Now, since the stable yard had not been used for years, it was no +wonder that the whole party was, so to speak, on tiptoe, longing to run +and investigate. But Mrs. Avory had always objected very strongly to +inquisitiveness, and so they stayed where they were and waited +expectantly. And then, after a minute or so, Kink came up to the table +with a twinkle in his old eye and a letter in his old hand. +</P> + +<P> +"Didn't we hear the sound of a carriage?" Mrs. Avory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Did you, mum?" said old Kink, who was a great tease. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm sure there were wheels," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +Kink said nothing. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course there were wheels," said Robert. "Don't be such an old +humbug." +</P> + +<P> +But Kink only twinkled. +</P> + +<P> +"It's only coals," said Gregory; "isn't it?" +</P> + +<P> +"The first I've heard of coals`" said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"Kinky dear," said Janet, "is it something awfully exciting?" +</P> + +<P> +"Nothing very exciting about a house, that I know of, Miss Janet," said +Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"A house!" cried Janet. "It couldn't have been a house!" +</P> + +<P> +"There's all sorts of houses," said Kink; "there's houses on the ground +and there's houses on—" +</P> + +<P> +"O Kinky," cried Hester, "I know!" +</P> + +<P> +And she clapped her hands and absolutely screamed. "I know. It's a +caravan!" +</P> + +<P> +"A caravan!" the children shouted together, and with one movement they +dashed off to see. +</P> + +<P> +Old Kink laughed and Mrs. Avory laughed. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a caravan right enough," he said. "And a very pretty one too, and +none of they nasty gypsies in it neither." +</P> + +<P> +"But where does it come from?" Mrs. Avory asked, and in reply Kink +handed her the letter; but she had done no more than open it when Janet +ran back to drag her to see the wonderful sight. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, I need hardly say, was already on the box with the whip in his +hand, while all the others were inside, except Horace Campbell, who had +climbed on the roof, and was telephoning down the chimney. The men and +horse that had brought it were gone. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, mother," cried Hester, "whose is it? Is it ours?" +</P> + +<P> +"I expect the letter tells us everything," said Mrs. Avory, and, +sitting on the top of the steps, she unfolded the letter, and, after +looking through, read it aloud. +</P> + +<P> +This is what it said: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR CHILDREN, +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"It has long been my wish to give you a new kind of present, but I have +hitherto had no luck. I thought once of an elephant, and even wrote to +Jamrach about the idea—a small elephant, not a mountain—-but I gave +that up. Chiswick is too crowded, and your garden is too small. But now +I think I have found the very thing. A caravan. It belonged to a lady +artist, who, having to live abroad, wished to sell it; and it is now +yours. I tell you this so that mother need not be afraid that it is +dirty. It should reach you this week, and can stand in the old coach +house until you are ready to set forth on the discovery of your native +land. I should have liked also to have added a horse and a man; but you +must do that and keep an account of what everything costs, and let me +know when I come back from abroad. I shall expect some day a long +account of your adventures, and if you keep a logbook, so much the +better. +<BR><BR> +"I am, + "Your true, if unsettling, friend,<BR> + "X.<BR> +<BR><BR> +"P.S.—You will find a use for the enclosed key sooner or later, and if +you want to write to me, address the letter to 'X., care of Smithurst +and Wynn, Lincoln's Inn Fields, W.C.'" +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +For a while after the letter was finished the Avories were too excited +and thoughtful to speak, while as for the Rotherams and Horace +Campbell, however they may have tried, they could not disguise an +expression, if not exactly of envy, certainly of disappointment. There +was no X. in their family. +</P> + +<P> +"May we really go away in it and discover England?" Robert asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I suppose so," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +"Then that makes Sea View all right," said Gregory. "Because this will +do instead." +</P> + +<P> +The poor Rotherams! Sea View had suddenly become tame and almost +tiresome. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory saw their regrets in their faces, and cheered them up by the +remark that the caravan must sometimes be lent to others. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Do you think Dr. Rotheram would let you go?" she asked Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course he would," said Jack. "But I wish it was a houseboat." +</P> + +<P> +The suggestion was so idiotic that everyone fell on him in scorn. +</P> + +<P> +"But who is X.?" Mrs. Avory asked. +</P> + +<P> +The letter was written in a round office hand that told nothing. Mr. +Scott was the most likely person, but why should Mr. Scott hide? He +never had done such a thing. Or Mr. Lenox? But neither was it his way +to be secret and mysterious. Nor was it Uncle Christopher's. +</P> + +<P> +When, however, you have a caravan given you, and it is standing there +waiting to be explored, the question who gave it or did not give it +becomes unimportant. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory put the case in a nutshell. "Never mind about old X. now," he +said. "Let's make a thorough examination!" +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap03"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 3 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE THOROUGH EXAMINATION +</H3> + +<P> +It was a real caravan. That is to say, either gypsies might have lived +in it, or anyone that did live in it would soon be properly gipsified. +It was painted in gay colours, and had little white blinds with very +neat waists and red sashes round them. That is the right kind of +caravan. The brown caravans highly varnished are wrong: they may be +more luxurious, but no gypsy would look at them. +</P> + +<P> +The body of it was green—a good apple green—and the panels were lined +with blue. Some people say that blue and green won't go together; but +don't let us take any notice of them. Just look at the bed of +forget-me-nots, or a copse of bluebells; or, for that matter, try to +see the Avories' caravan. The window frames and bars were white. The +spokes and hubs of the wheels were red. It was most awfully gay. +</P> + +<P> +Inside—but the inside of a caravan is so exciting that I hardly know +how to hold my pen. The inside of a caravan! Can you imagine a better +phrase than that? I can't. If Coleridge's statement is true that poetry +is the best words in the best order, then that is the best poem: the +inside of a caravan! +</P> + +<P> +The caravan was sixteen feet six inches long and six feet two inches +high inside. From the ground it stood ten feet. It was six feet four +inches wide. If you measure these distances in the dining room, you +will see how big it was, and you will be able to imagine yourselves in +it. +</P> + +<P> +The woodwork was all highly varnished, and very new and clean. More +than halfway down the caravan were heavy curtains hanging across it, +and behind these was the bedroom, containing four beds, two on each +wall, on hinged shelves, that could be let down flat against the +wall-by day, when the folding chairs could be unfolded, and the bedroom +then became a little boudoir. +</P> + +<P> +The floor space was, however, filled this afternoon with great bundles +which turned out to be gypsy tents and sleeping sacks. "For the boys +and Kink to sleep in," said Janet; "but we must be very careful about +waterproof sheeting on the ground first." +</P> + +<P> +The rest of the caravan, between the door and the bedroom—about ten +feet—was the kitchen and living room. Here every inch of the wall was +used, either by chairs that folded back like those in the corridors of +railway carriages, or by shelves, racks, cupboards, or pegs. There were +two tables, which also folded to the wall. +</P> + +<P> +The stove was close to the door, but of course, no one who lives in a +caravan ever uses the stove except when it is raining. You make the +fire out of doors at all other times, and swing the pot from three +sticks. (Hedgehog stew! Can't you smell it?) There were kitchen +utensils on hooks and racks on each side of the stove which was covered +in with shining brass, and rows of enameled cups and saucers, and +plates, and knives and forks. The living room floor was covered with +linoleum; the bedroom floor had a carpet. Swinging candlesticks were +screwed into the wall here and there. It was more like the cabin of a +ship than anything on land could ever be, and Jack Rotheram began to +weaken towards it. +</P> + +<P> +In course of time other things were discovered, showing what a thorough +person X. was. A large India rubber bath, for instance, and a bath +sheet to go under it. A Beatrice oil stove and oil. An electric torch +for sudden requirements at night. A tea-basket for picnics. Quantities +of cart-oil. A piece of pumice stone (very thoughtful). There was also +a box of little India rubber pads with tintacks, the use for which (not +discovered till later) was to prevent the rattling of the furniture by +making it fit a little better. And in one of the cupboards was a bottle +of camphor pills, and a tin of tobacco labeled "For Tramps and Gypsies." +</P> + +<P> +There was even a bookshelf with books on it: "Hans Andersen," "The +Arabian Nights," "Lavengro," "Inquire Within," "Mrs. Beeton," +"Bradshaw" (rather cowardly, Robert thought), and "The Blue Poetry +Book." There was also "The Whole Art of Caravaning," with certain +passages marked in pencil, such as this: +</P> + +<P> +"We pull up to measure the breadth of the gate, and if it be broad +enough, send forward an ambassador to the farm, who shall explain that +we would fain camp here, that we are not gypsies, vagabonds or +suspicious characters, that we will leave all as we find it, and will +not rob or wantonly destroy. And in case of need, he shall delicately +hint that we may incidentally provide good custom in butter, eggs, +milk, and half a dozen other things. Our ambassador must also, if it be +possible, secure a stall for the horse." +</P> + +<P> +And this useful reminder: +</P> + +<P> +"We must have water near at hand and a farm within reasonable distance, +and we should look for shelter from prevailing winds. We must avoid +soft ground, and it is a mistake to camp in long grass unless the +weather be particularly dry. We should be as far as possible from the +road if there is much traffic upon it. It is great advantage if there +is a stream or lake at hand for bathing. An old pasture field sloping +away from the road will often satisfy our requirements in low-lying +districts. And up among the moors we shall be content to take a piece +of level ground where we can find it. There will be nothing to disturb +us there." +</P> + +<P> +And this excellent caravan poem: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "I love the gentle office of the cook,<BR> + The cheerful stove, the placid twilight hour,<BR> + When, with the tender fragrance of the flower,<BR> + And all the bubbling voices of the brook,<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "The coy potato or the onion browns,<BR> + The tender steak takes on a nobler hue.<BR> + I ponder 'mid the falling of the dew,<BR> + And watch the lapwings circling o'er the downs.<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "Like portals at the pathway of the moon<BR> + Two trees stand forth in pencilled silhouette<BR> + Against the steel-grey sky, as black as jet—<BR> + The steak is ready. Ah! too soon! too soon!"<BR> +</P> + +<P> +So much (with one exception) for the inside of the caravan. Underneath +it were still other things, for a box with perforated sides swung +between the wheels, and this was the larder, always cool and shady +(except, as Janet remarked, on dusty days), and near it on hooks were a +hanging saucepan, a great kettle, two pails, and two market baskets, a +nose bag, and a skid. Close by was a place for oats and chaff. +</P> + +<P> +A new set of harness was packed on the box, and it was so complete that +on each of the little brass ornaments that hang on the horse's chest +was the letter "A." On the back of the caravan was a shelf that might +be let down, making a kind of sideboard for outdoor meals. +</P> + +<P> +For two or three days the caravan did nothing but hold receptions. +Everyone who knew the Avories came to see it—even Robert's bird +stuffer, who said he would like to borrow it for a week's holiday in +Epping Forest, and observe Nature through its windows. Several of +Gregory's intimates also examined it, and approved. Miss Bingham +pronounced it elegant and commodious, and Mr. Crawley (who, like all +schoolmasters and tutors, made too many puns) said that its probable +rate of speed reminded him of his name. Collins wished she might never +have to cook in it, but otherwise was very tolerant. Eliza Pollard said +that her choice would be a motor car, and Jane Masters brought 'Erb +back on Sunday afternoon, and they examined it together and decided +that with such a home as that they might be married at once. +</P> + +<P> +I have left till the last the most exciting thing of all. In an +enclosure, you remember, was a key concerning the purpose of which +nothing was said in the letter. Well, in the course of the exploration +of the caravan, which went on for some days, always yielding a fresh +discovery, Robert came upon a box securely fastened to the floor in a +dark corner. +</P> + +<P> +"Mother! mother!" he cried; "where's that key? I've found a mysterious +keyhole!" +</P> + +<P> +They all hurried to the stable yard to see, and Robert swiftly inserted +the key, and turned it. He fell back, too much overcome to speak. The +box contained twenty-five new sovereigns. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap04"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 4 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ITEMS +</H3> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox either knew everything, or knew someone who knew everything, +so that he was always certain to be able to help in any difficulty. +Mrs. Avory wrote to him to come round and consult with her about it, +and he was there at tea time. +</P> + +<P> +"A caravan!" he said, after she had finished. "Ripping! Nothing better." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Mrs. Avory, "but—" +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, well," said Mr. Lenox, "that's all right. A few little bothers, +but soon over." He checked them off on his finger. "Item—-as your old +Swan of Avon, Hester, would say—item, a driver." +</P> + +<P> +"I was thinking of Kink," said Mrs. Avory; "but there's the garden." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Mr. Lenox, "and there's also Kink. Do you think he'd go?" +</P> + +<P> +"The best thing to do is to ask him," said Mrs. Avory. "Gregory, just +run and bring Kink in." +</P> + +<P> +Kink soon appeared, fresh from the soil. +</P> + +<P> +"Would you be willing to drive the caravan if we decided to use it?" +Mrs. Avory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"'If'!" cried the children. "Steady on, mother. 'If'!" +</P> + +<P> +Kink, who was a great tease, pretended to think for quite a long time, +until his silence had driven the children nearly desperate. "Yes," he +then said, "I should, mum, provided you let me find a trustworthy man +to go on with the garden. Otherwise I shouldn't dare to face Mrs. +Collins when I came back." +</P> + +<P> +"That's very kind of you, Kink," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +"Good old Kinky!" said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Mr. Lenox. "And now for item two. The horse. How would you +go to work to get a horse, Kink?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Kink, "that's a little out of my way. A horse radish, yes; +but not a horse." +</P> + +<P> +Everyone laughed: the old man expected it. +</P> + +<P> +"Then," said Mr. Lenox, with a mock sigh, "I suppose the horse will +have to be found by me. We don't want to buy one—only to hire it." +</P> + +<P> +"Don't let's have a horse," said Gregory; "let's have a motor. I think +a motor caravan would be splendid." +</P> + +<P> +"There you're quite wrong," said Mr. Lenox. "The life-blood of a +caravan is sloth; the life-blood of a motor is speed. You can't mix +them. And how could Robert here survey England creditably if he rushed +through it in a motor? You're going to survey England, aren't you, +Bobbie? No, it must be a horse, and I will get it. I will make friends +with cabmen, and coachmen, and grooms, and stable-boys. I will carry a +straw in my mouth. I will get a horse to do you credit. What colour +would you like?" +</P> + +<P> +"White," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"It shall be a white horse," said Mr. Lenox. "And now," he added, "the +way is cleared for item three. Can you guess what that is?" +</P> + +<P> +They all tried to guess, but could not. They were too excited. +</P> + +<P> +"A dog," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," they cried. +</P> + +<P> +"To guard the caravan at night and when we are away," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Exactly," said Mr. Lenox. "And what kind of a dog?" +</P> + +<P> +"A dachshund," said Hester. +</P> + +<P> +"Too small," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"A St. Bernard," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Too mild," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"A spaniel," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Too gentle," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"A fox-terrier," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Not strong enough," said Mr. Lenox. "I leave it to Mr. Lenox," said +Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +"Very well, then," said Mr. Lenox, "a retriever—a retriever, because +it is big and formidable, and also because, when tied up, it will +always be on the watch. We'll buy the <I>Exchange</I> and <I>Mart</I>, and look +up retrievers. We can't hire a dog; we must buy outright there. Now, +then, Bobbie, item four?" +</P> + +<P> +"Maps," said Bobbie. +</P> + +<P> +"Right," said Mr. Lenox. "I wish I was coming with you." +</P> + +<P> +"Do," they all cried. +</P> + +<P> +"I can't," said Mr. Lenox. "If I were to go away before September, I +should get the sack, and then I should starve. His Lordship is +sufficiently cross with me now, because I had to give him out +leg-before at the annual estate match last Saturday, when I was +umpiring. He couldn't stand anything else." +</P> + +<P> +That night Mrs. Avory, Uncle Christopher, Mr. Scott, and Mr. Lenox were +talking after dinner. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a very wonderful present," said Mrs. Avory; "but there are two +things about it that are not quite satisfactory. One is that one likes +to know where such gifts come from, and the other is that for a party +of children to go away alone, with only Kink, is a great +responsibility." (That's a word which mothers are very fond of.) +"Suppose they're ill?" +</P> + +<P> +"It's a risk you must take," said Uncle Chris. "Don't anticipate +trouble." +</P> + +<P> +"Because," Mrs. Avory went on, "I should not go with them, although I +might arrange to meet them here and there on their journey. They would +like me to be with them, I know, and they would like to be without me, +I know." +</P> + +<P> +"I shouldn't worry about the giver of the present," said Mr. Scott. +"You have many friends from whom you would have no objection to accept +a caravan, and there's no harm in one of those friends wishing to be +anonymous. As for the other matter, I don't see much risk so long as +Kink goes too. He's a careful and very capable old sport, and Janet's +as good a mother as you any day." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory laughed. "Yes, I know that," she said. "But what about +gypsies and tramps?" +</P> + +<P> +"One has always got to take a few chances," said Uncle Christopher. +"They may get things stolen now and then from the outside of the +caravan, but I should doubt if anything else happened. Kink and a good +dog would see to that. And Janet would see to the children keeping dry, +or getting dry quickly after rain, and so forth. Such an experience as +a fortnight in a caravan of their own should be a splendid thing for +all of them. Gregory, for example—it's quite time that he studied the +A B C of engineering and began where James Watt began, instead of +merely profiting by the efforts of all the investigators since then. I +mean, it's quite time he watched a kettle boil; and Hester would get no +harm by mixing a little washing-up with her 'Romeo and Juliet' +wool-gathering." +</P> + +<P> +"I think you're right," said Mrs. Avory; "and I'm sure they are very +unlikely to get any such experience here. But I shall be very nervous." +</P> + +<P> +"No, you won't," said Mr. Lenox, "because we'll arrange that you shall +have news. I have thought of that. A telegram every morning at +breakfast and a telegram every evening after tea. That will be +perfectly simple. And letters, of course." +</P> + +<P> +In this way it was settled that the Great Experiment might be tried, +especially as so wise a woman as Collins and so old an ally as Runcie +were not against it. Both, indeed, were of Uncle Christopher's opinion +that the self-help and self-reliance which the caravan would lead to +would be of the greatest use. +</P> + +<P> +Collins, when she heard later some hint of the possible route the +caravan would follow, became not only a supporter of the scheme, but an +enthusiast, because her own home was not distant, and she made the +children promise to spend a day there with her brother, the farmer. She +also gave Janet some lessons in frying-pan cooking. +</P> + +<P> +Runcie never became an enthusiast, but she allowed herself to be +interested, if cautionary. +</P> + +<P> +"To think of the nice comfortable beds you will be leaving," she would +say. +</P> + +<P> +"A horse is a vain thing for safety," she would say. +</P> + +<P> +"The blisters you'll get on your poor feet!" she would say. +</P> + +<P> +"The indigestion!" she would say. +</P> + +<P> +"Living like gypsies," she would say. +</P> + +<P> +"No proper washing or anything," she would say. +</P> + +<P> +"Cheer up, Runcie," Gregory would reply; "you're not going." +</P> + +<P> +"And glad I am I'm not," she would answer. +</P> + +<P> +"I wish you were, Runcie, and then we'd show you in the villages as +'The Old-Woman-Who-Can't-See-Any-Fun-in-Caravaning' Walk up! Walk up! A +penny a peep!" +</P> + +<P> +"A clever dog. He knows the difference between an attack and a feeling +of faintness. But just come down to the Bricklayers' Arms, and I'll +show you." +</P> + +<P> +"No, thank you," said Mr. Lenox hastily. "How much is he?" +</P> + +<P> +"Three pounds," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, come!" said Mr. Lenox. "Not for a public-house dog." +</P> + +<P> +"Not a penny less," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap05"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 5 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +DIOGENES AND MOSES +</H3> + +<P> +The Sea View disappointment being so keenly felt, Mrs. Avory decided to +give the children an extra holiday of a fortnight at once, in which to +taste the delights of the caravan, and meanwhile she would herself go +down to the Isle of Wight to try to find other rooms; and it was +arranged that Mary Rotheram and one of her brothers and Horace Campbell +should be squeezed into the party too. Jack and William Rotheram +therefore tossed up for it, and Jack won. +</P> + +<P> +This suddenness, as we shall see, was very fortunate, but it threw Mr. +Lenox into a state of perspiration quite strange to him. +</P> + +<P> +"My dear Jenny," he said to Mrs. Avory, "how am I to get a horse to do +you credit, if you hurry me so? A horse is an animal requiring the most +careful study. Each one of its four legs needs separate consideration. +I should have liked some weeks of thought. The dog, too. Just as there +is only one satisfactory horse in the world for each family, so is +there only one satisfactory dog; and you ask me to get both in a few +minutes." +</P> + +<P> +He lay back and fanned himself. +</P> + +<P> +Then he pulled two pennies from his pocket and gave them to Gregory, +and told him to go to the station bookstall and bring back the +<I>Exchange</I> and <I>Mart</I>. +</P> + +<P> +The <I>Exchange</I> and <I>Mart</I>, as perhaps you may not know, is, without any +exaggeration, the most delightful paper in the world. It contains +nothing that one dislikes to read about, such as accidents, murders, +suicides, politics, and criticisms of concerts; it contains nothing +whatever of such things, while, on the other hand, it is packed with +matters of real interest. It tells you who has dogs for sale, and +rabbits for sale, and magic-lanterns for sale, and cameras for sale, +and bicycles for sale, and guinea-pigs for sale,—all at a +bargain,—and it tells you also who wants to buy rabbits and cameras +and guinea-pigs; and it also tells you who wants to exchange rabbits +for a gun, or a dog for a fishing-rod, or a gramophone for a parrot. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory brought the paper back, and Mr. Lenox at once turned to the +section entitled "The Kennel," and then to the subsection "Retrievers," +and he found the names of three persons who wished to sell wonderful +specimens of that breed. +</P> + +<P> +Two were in London and one was at Harrow. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory therefore went off to find a taxicab (no easy thing at +Chiswick), and, coming back with one at last, Mr. Lenox and he drove to +the nearest of the London addresses. +</P> + +<P> +The first was no good at all. The retrievers were all puppies, so +gentle and playful that they would not have frightened even a mouse +from the caravan door. But the next, which was at Bermondsey, was +better. Here, in a small backyard, they found Mr. Amos, the advertiser, +surrounded by kennels. He was a little man with a squint, and he +declared that he had nothing but the best-bred dogs with the longest +pedigrees. +</P> + +<P> +"But we don't want anything so swagger as that," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"We want a watchdog to be kept on a chain, but friendly enough with his +own people. If you keep only pedigree dogs, we may as well get on to +our next address." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Amos stepped between Mr. Lenox and the door. "It's most +extraordinary odd," he said, "for, although I make it almost a religion +never to have any but pedigree dogs, it happens that just at this very +moment I have got, for the first time in my whole career, an inferior +animal. It's not mine. Oh, no; I'm only taking care of it for a friend. +But it's a retriever all right, and a good one, mark you, though not a +pedigree dog. My friend wants a good home for it. He's very particular +about that. Kind, nice people, you know. Bones. I dare say you know +him," Mr. Amos added: "Mr. Bateman, who keeps the Bricklayers' Arms." +</P> + +<P> +How funny, Gregory thought, to keep bricklayers' arms! And he wondered +why the bricklayers didn't keep their own arms, and who kept their +legs, and he might have asked if Mr. Amos had not called to a boy named +Jim to "bring Tartar over here, and look slippy." +</P> + +<P> +While Jim was bringing Tartar,—who lived in a tub, and must therefore, +Mr. Lenox said, be called in future Diogenes,—Mr. Amos reminded them +how much more likely one is to get good watch-work from a dog who is +not of the highest breeding than from a prize-winner. "As I often say," +he added, "you can have too much blood; that you can. Too much blood. +It's the only fault of many of my dogs." +</P> + +<P> +Diogenes now stood before them, looking by no means overburdened with +blood and extremely ready for a new home. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox asked why Mr. Amos thought he was a good watch-dog. +</P> + +<P> +"Think!" said Mr. Amos. "I don't think; I know. If Mr. Bateman was here +and you were to hit him, that dog would kill you. No thinking twice, +mark you. He'd just kill you." +</P> + +<P> +"I hope," said Mr. Lenox, "I shall never meet Mr. Bateman in his +presence. Suppose I were to fall against him accidentally—how +perfectly ghastly!" +</P> + +<P> +"No fear of that," said Mr. Amos. +</P> +<P> +"A clever dog. He knows the difference between an attack and a feeling of faintness. But just come down to the Bricklayers' Arms, and I'll show you." +</P> + +<P> +"No, thank you," said Mr. Lenox hastily. "How much is he?" +</P> + +<P> +"Three pounds," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, come!" said Mr. Lenox. "Not for a public-house dog." +</P> + +<P> +"Not a penny less," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<P> +"He's very well, then," said Mr. Lenox, "we must get on, Gregory. We +have still that other address." +</P> + +<P> +"Two pounds ten," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said Mr. Lenox; "much too dear. Come along, Gregory." +</P> + +<P> +"I'll tell you what I'll do," said Mr. Amos, "though it will be the end +of my friendship with Mr. Bateman. I'll say nothing about the collar +and chain, and take two pounds." +</P> + +<P> +"Too dear," said Mr. Lenox, stepping to the taxi. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, how much will you give?" Mr. Amos asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I'll give you twenty-five shillings as he stands," said Mr. Lenox. +</P> + +<P> +"He's yours," said Mr. Amos. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox immediately paid the money, and then he went to a small +grocer's near by and bought a bag of biscuits, and with them he and +Gregory fed the famished Diogenes all the way back to Chiswick, and by +the time they reached home he seemed so affectionate with them as never +to have had another master. +</P> + +<P> +Diogenes had come, of course, to stay; but the horse was merely to be +hired. To hire a carriage-horse or a riding-horse is easy enough, but a +cart-horse as strong as a steam-engine is more difficult to find. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox decided to advertise, and he therefore sent the following +advertisement to the <I>Daily Telegram</I>: +</P> + +<P> +"Wanted—To hire for a month at least, an exceedingly powerful, gentle +white horse to draw a caravan. Reply by letter. L., 'The Gables.' +Chiswick." +</P> + +<P> +"There," said Mr. Lenox, as he read it out, "that's as clear as +crystal. No one can misunderstand that." +</P> + +<P> +But, as a matter of fact, people will misunderstand anything; for on +the day the advertisement appeared quite a number of men called at "The +Gables," all leading horses of every size and colour. Kink was kept +busy in getting rid of them, but one man succeeded in finding Robert +unattended, and did all he could to persuade him that a pair of small +skew-bald ponies such as he had brought with him would be far more +useful in a caravan than one large cart-horse. +</P> + +<P> +"Run in and tell your father that, old sport," said he. "Tell him I've +got a pair of skews here as will do him credit, and he shall have the +two for twenty pounds." +</P> + +<P> +"No, no," said Robert; "they're no use at all. We advertised for one +large, strong white horse." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Crawley was coming away from the house at this moment, and the man +tackled him. +</P> + +<P> +"Have the pair, mister," said the man. "They're wonderful +together—draw a pantechnicon. There's lots of white on them, too. Your +little boy here has taken such a fancy to them," he added. "Eighteen +pound for the two." +</P> + +<P> +Another man, who brought a black horse and said that white horses +always had a defect somewhere, fastened on Miss Bingham. +</P> + +<P> +"This is what you want, mum," he said. "Honest black. Never trust a +white horse," he said. "Black's the colour. Look at this mare +here—she's a beauty. Strong as an elephant and docile as a tortoise. +Fifteen quid, mum, and a bargain." +</P> + +<P> +"My good man," said Miss Bingham, "you are laboring under a +misapprehension. I require no horse." +</P> + +<P> +Fortunately, among the letters were several that told of exactly the +kind of horse that was needed, and one afternoon a stable boy led into +the yard a perfectly enormous creature which Mr. Lenox had hired for a +pound a week from a man at Finchley. +</P> + +<P> +"Warranted sound in wind and limb," said Mr. Lenox, "and his name is +Moses." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, having given Moses a lump of sugar, declined ever again to +wish for a motor caravan, especially as Mr. Scott slipped into his hand +that evening a large knife containing eight useful articles, including +a hook for extracting stones from horses' feet. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap06"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 6 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE PLANS +</H3> + +<P> +The question where to go came next, and, compared with this, all the +other preparations had been simple. Here they were, with a caravan, and +a horse, and a driver, and a dog, and maps, and a mapmeasurer (do you +know what they're called?—they're called wealemafnas), and tents, +and—most of all—permission to be entirely alone; and it was not yet +decided where they were going. +</P> + +<P> +Of course, as you may suppose, each of the party knew where he or she +wanted to go, but that was merely a private matter; no general decision +had been come to. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Crawley, who may be said to have lived for golf, suggested Ashdown +Forest, and then, he said, he could look them up from time to time if +they made a permanent camp there. But who wants to be looked up by a +tutor when one is on a caravan holiday? +</P> + +<P> +Miss Bingham was in favour of an itinerary (as she called it) that +embraced two or three cathedral cities. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox said: "Go to Sussex, and camp under the downs at night and +explore them by day." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Scott, on the other hand, said: "Go to Berkshire and see the White +Horse that Tom Hughes scoured and wrote about." And he promised to lend +them the book to convert them to this project. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory declined to express any opinion. "It's your caravan," she +said, "and I would much rather you decided everything for yourselves." +(What a delightful mother!) +</P> + +<P> +Janet wanted to go to the New Forest, because she had never been there, +and now was a chance, and because for many years "The Children of the +New Forest" had been her favourite story. +</P> + +<P> +Robert wanted to go to Salisbury Plain and see the sun rise at +Stonehenge, and cast an eye over the military operations there. +</P> + +<P> +Jack Rotheram wanted to go to Hambledon, in Hampshire, to see the +cradle of cricket, as it is called—the old ground on Broad Half-penny +Down where they used to play cricket in tall hats, as described in John +Nyren's book, which someone had given him. +</P> + +<P> +Mary Rotheram wanted to go to Bredon Hill in Worcestershire, because +she had always wanted to ever since she had learned a song which began: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "In summertime on Bredon<BR> + The bells they sound so clear;<BR> + Round both the shires they ring them<BR> + In steeples far and near,<BR> + A happy noise to hear.<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "Here of a Sunday morning<BR> + My love and I would lie,<BR> + And see the coloured counties,<BR> + And hear the larks so high<BR> + About us in the sky."<BR> +</P> + +<P> +That line about the coloured counties had always fascinated her: she +had longed also to see them, lying beneath her, all spread out. The +coloured counties! She talked so enthusiastically and prettily about it +that she quite won over Robert, who decided that Bredon would be quite +as interesting as Salisbury Plain, and would give him practice, too, in +estimating square miles; so that there were two for Bredon Hill, as +against one for all the other places. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, however, was not for Bredon. He wanted to see the +flying-ground at Sheppey, which is in a totally different direction, +and perhaps induce someone with an aeroplane to give him a lift. +</P> + +<P> +Horace Campbell sided with Gregory, while Hester voted continually and +feelingly for Stratford-on-Avon. To see Stratford-on-Avon—that was her +idea: to walk through the same streets as her beloved Shakespeare, to +see the place where his house had stood, to row on his river, to stand +by his tomb! +</P> + +<P> +When the time came to discuss the journey seriously, it was Hester who +won. Stratford-on-Avon was decided on, with an extension to Bredon Hill +as the farthest point away, returning by way of Cheltenham and +Cirencester to Faringdon (for the White Horse), and then taking train +for home, and leaving Kink and Moses to do the remaining seventy miles +alone. +</P> + +<P> +The distance from Bredon to Faringdon through Cheltenham, Cirencester, +and Fairford, was roughly forty-five miles, or five days of nine miles +each. Starting at Oxford, as was proposed, they would be three or four +days in getting to Stratford, and two days there; three days more, at +the most, in getting to Bredon, This would make eleven days altogether, +which would make, with rests on the two Sundays, and one whole day at +the White Horse, the full fortnight. +</P> + +<P> +This, then, is what was at last decided: that Kink should get the +caravan to Oxford and be all ready for the children to join him on the +Wednesday morning. They should go down to Oxford on the day before and +be looked after by Mr. Lenox's young brother, who was at Oriel. +</P> + +<P> +They should leave Oxford in the caravan on the next morning on their +way to Stratford-on-Avon. +</P> + +<P> +The distance from Oxford to Stratford was thirty-nine miles, and it was +decided to do this in three days, which meant thirteen miles a day. The +first night, therefore, would be spent near Woodstock, the next near +Chipping Norton, and the third near Shipston down in the green meadows +on the banks of the Stour. At Stratford they would find Mrs. Avory +waiting for them, and stay with her at the Shakespeare Hotel for a day +or so. By that time they would know exactly how much or how little they +liked the caravan, and what things were necessary; and then Mrs. Avory +would go back and they would begin their real adventures. Could +anything be better? Although, of course, Robert was very contemptuous +of the Shakespeare Hotel part of the programme. "The idea of sleeping +in a bed!" he said. +</P> + +<P> +The next thing to do was to apportion the various duties. Kink, of +course, was arranged for; he was to drive and to look after the horse +and sleep as near the caravan as could be managed; while Diogenes was +always to be on guard. Kink also was to see about water. +</P> + +<P> +Janet was purser and steward. She had to decide what food was wanted, +and to keep the money. Hester was the official letter-writer, and was +under a promise to write home every other evening. Robert was the guide +and geographer; he kept the maps. He was also the telegraphist. Mary +Rotheram, who had taken lessons in cooking, was chief cook, and she was +to be helped by Janet. Jack was superintendent of the washing-up, and +Horace Campbell was his principal ally. (How tired they got of it!) +Jack, Horace, and Robert were carriers between the grocer's, the +butcher's, the baker's, and the Slowcoach. +</P> + +<P> +It was arranged that Gregory, being the smallest and weakest, and +therefore the least likely to be refused, should go on and ask leave of +the farmers on whose land it was proposed to rest the caravan at night. +Mary Rotheram should be his companion, and ask for eggs and milk at the +same time. +</P> + +<P> +Next came the victualling, and this was exceedingly interesting, +although it made great holes in the sovereign box. Janet and Mary +Rotheram sat for hours over the Stores List, and they were continually +taking important questions to Collins. +</P> + +<P> +"How many tins of mustard ought we to take? A dozen at fourpence?" +</P> + +<P> +"Mustard, Miss Mary? Why, two penny ones would be enough for a month." +</P> + +<P> +(Three and tenpence saved, you see.) +</P> + +<P> +"I say, Collins, how long do eggs boil?" +</P> + +<P> +"Collins, you have to prick sausages, don't you, or else they burst?" +</P> + +<P> +"Collins, how many loaves do eight people want a day?" +</P> + +<P> +"Four, Miss Janet, at the least—large ones." +</P> + +<P> +"Including Kink?" Janet explained. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Kink too! Five, then, if not six, the old gormandizer." +</P> + +<P> +"Collins, what's the best part of beef for stewing?" +</P> + +<P> +"Collins, you can put anything into a stew, can't you? Absolutely +anything?" +</P> + +<P> +"Collins, if you've put too much pepper into a thing, is there any way +of getting it out again?" +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory was very particular about tinned things. "You must have +plenty of tongues," she said, "in case the fire won't burn or the meat +is too tough;" and privately she instructed Kink to keep an eye on +their eating. "They must eat, Kink, don't forget. Never mind what they +say; make them eat sensibly." To the stores Mrs. Avory herself added a +number of tongues and a good deal of plain chocolate. +</P> + +<P> +The day for Kink's departure—at least three days before the others +were to leave—at last arrived, and by eleven o'clock everything was +ready: Kink was seated on the shafts, with the reins in one hand, and +in the other an ancient map of the road from London to Oxford, which +Robert had found in one of his father's Road Books, of which there were +many in the library, and had carefully traced. It was called <I>Britannia +Depicta;</I> OR, <I>"Ogilby" Improved,</I> 1753, and, so that you may see what +kind of help Kink was offered, I have had the map reproduced here. +Kink, I may say, having some difficulty in reading even the plain print +of the morning paper, held the tracing in his hand only so far as he +was in sight. He then folded it up and placed it in his pocket, and +when he was in any doubt as to the way, asked the first person he met. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox and Mr. Scott were both there in time to see the start of the +Slowcoach, as they had decided to call it. Also present at the start +was the greater part of adult Chiswick and all its children, who filled +the street opposite "The Gables" and cheered. Kink accepted their +enthusiasm with calm, but as he said afterwards to Collins, "I felt +like the Prince of Wales and all the royal family." +</P> + +<P> +Both Mr. Scott and Mr. Lenox brought contributions to the Slowcoach's +stores. Mr. Scott's was a large bundle of firelighters and twelve dozen +boxes of matches. "You can't have too many matches," he said. Mr. +Lenox's was ointment for blisters. +</P> + +<P> +Uncle Christopher was also there to see the start, and he brought with +him an envelope. "This envelope," he said, "is not to be opened unless +you're in any very serious difficulty. Then open it." +</P> + +<P> +And so, in a scene of wild excitement, Kink cracked his whip, Moses +strained at the collar, the Slowcoach creaked heavily out of the yard, +and its historic journey was begun. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap07"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 7 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +MR. LENOX'S YOUNG BROTHER +</H3> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother met the party on the Oxford platform. He was +accompanied by two of his friends, who were dressed in grey flannels +and straw hats, and were smoking very large and beautiful pipes. Mr. +Lenox's young brother introduced these friends as Fizzy and Shrimp, and +then they packed themselves into three hansoms and drove off. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother led the way with Janet and Mary. Fizzy (at +least, Hester thought it was Fizzy, but it may have been Shrimp) came +next with Hester, Horace, and Gregory; and then came Shrimp (unless it +was Fizzy) with Robert and Jack. +</P> + +<P> +Oxford hansoms are the worst in the world, but seldom has a ride been +more delightful. The three hosts pointed out the colleges as they +passed, until they came, far too soon, to the Mitre, where they were to +sleep. +</P> + +<P> +"Now take your things upstairs and make sure where your rooms are, and +tidy up if you want to," said Mr. Lenox's young brother, "and then hop +down, and we'll take you to see the caravan, and show you about a +little, and perhaps go on the river; and in the evening we're going to +have supper in my rooms. Fizzy's going to conjure, and perhaps we'll +have charades." +</P> + +<P> +These words made tidying up an even simpler matter than usual, and the +party started off. +</P> + +<P> +Kink, it seems, had reached Oxford that morning, and was at the Green +Man, where the Slowcoach was an object of extraordinary interest to the +neighbourhood. They found him seated on the top step reading the paper, +while forty-five children (at least) stared at him. Diogenes lay at the +foot of the steps. +</P> + +<P> +Kink was very glad to see them. No, he said, he hadn't had any +adventures exactly, but driving a caravan was no work for a modest man +who wished for a quiet life among vegetables. +</P> + +<P> +"This," he said, waving his pipe at the increasing crowd, "is nothing. +You should have see them at Beaconsfield and High Wycombe. They began +by thinking I was Lord John Sanger, and when they were satisfied that I +wasn't, they made sure I was a Cheap Jack with gold watches for a +shilling each." +</P> + +<P> +"How does it go, Kink?" Robert asked. +</P> + +<P> +"It goes all right," said Kink, "but the crockery wants muffling. You +can't hear yourself think when you trot." +</P> + +<P> +"And Diogenes?" +</P> + +<P> +"Diogenes," said Kink, "is a masterpiece. He begins to growl at tramps +when they're half a mile away. Why is it, I wonder," Kink added, "that +dogs can't abide ragged clothes? This Oxford, they tell me, is a clever +place. I wonder if anyone here can explain that?" +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother and his friends had now to be shown the +Slowcoach, which they pronounced "top hole," and then Moses was +inspected in his stable; and, this being done, they were ready for the +river—or, rather, for the ices at a pastrycook's shop in the High +Street—called the High—which were, to precede the river. +</P> + +<P> +Then they all trooped down to the boats and had a perfect hour's +rowing; and then they explored Oxford a little, and saw Tom Quad at +Christ Church (or "The House," as it is called), and were shown the +rooms in which the author of "Alice in Wonderland" lived for so many +years; and so right up through the city to Magdalen Grove, where the +deer live, and Magdalen Tower, on the top of which the May Day carols +are sung. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother lived in rooms outside his college; he would +not enter the college until next term. They were in Oriel Lane, and +exceedingly comfortable, with at least twenty pipes in a pipe-rack on +the wall, and at least thirty photographs of his favourite actresses, +chiefly Pauline Chase, and five cricket-bats in the corner, and about +forty walking-sticks, and a large number of puzzles of the "Pigs in +Clover" type, which nearly drove Gregory mad while supper was being +prepared. +</P> + +<P> +The preparation consisted merely of the entrance of one man after +another carrying silver dishes; for everything was cold, although +exceedingly sumptuous and solid. There were chickens all covered with a +beautiful thick whitewash, on which little hearts and stars cut out of +truffles were sprinkled. There was a tongue all over varnish, like the +dainty foot of a giant Cinderella. There were custards and tarts and +jellies. There were also bottles exactly like champagne bottles, which, +however, contained ginger ale, and for Mr. Lenox's young brother and +his friends there were silver tankards of beer. It was, in short, not a +supper, but, as Mary Rotheram expressed it, using her favourite +adjective at the moment, a supreme banquet. +</P> + +<P> +Then another friend, with spectacles, called the Snarker, came in, and +they began. Mr. Lenox's young brother was a very attentive host, and +made everyone eat too much. Then he made a speech to propose the health +of the Slowcoaches, as he called them, and to wish them a prosperous +journey. "That you will all be happy," he said, very gravely, in +conclusion, "is our earnest wish. But the one thing which my friends +and I desire more than any other—and I assure you that they are with +me most cordially in this sentiment (aren't you, Fizzy? aren't you, +Shrimp? aren't you, Snarker?)—the one thing that we desire more than +any other is, that you may never be run in for exceeding the speed +limit." This was a very successful joke. +</P> + +<P> +After supper came Fizzy's conjuring tricks, which were not very +bewildering to children who had once had a real conjurer from the +Stores, as these had, and then a charade played by Mary, Horace, Fizzy, +and Shrimp for the others to guess. +</P> + +<P> +The first act represented a motorist (Fizzy) who ran over and killed an +old woman (Mary), and was arrested by a policeman (Horace), and fined +eighteenpence by a magistrate (Shrimp). +</P> + +<P> +The second was a cockney scene in which two costers (Fizzy and Shrimp) +took their girls (Mary and Horace) to Hampstead Heath to 'ave fun. +</P> + +<P> +The third was Henry VIII. (Shrimp) receiving Anne of Cleves (Fizzy) and +her Maid of Honour (Mary), and telling Wolsey (Horace) to prepare the +divorce, because she was a "great Flanders mare." +</P> + +<P> +You see the whole word, of course—Car-'ave-Anne. +</P> + +<P> +Finally the Snarker said that they must play one writing game before +they went home. The Snarker, it seemed, came from a family which was +devoted to writing games, and had even made improvements in +"Consequences," which is, when you all know each other extremely well, +the best writing game of all. But among strangers, as the Snarker +explained, it was not so good, because they can't understand the jokes +against uncles and aunts. +</P> + +<P> +They did not, therefore, play "Consequences," but instead wrote what +the Snarker called "composite stories." That is to say, they each took +a large sheet of paper and began at the top a story, writing as much as +they could in two minutes. Then the paper was passed on, and the story +continued by the next person, until all had had one turn. Then the +original beginners each finished his story, and they were read out. +</P> + +<P> +As there were eleven playing, this meant there were eleven stories; but +I will copy only one of them. (Janet kept the papers, or I should not +be able to do that.) +</P> + +<P> +This is the one which was begun by Hester, who liked to be serious and +mysterious in her work, and was almost vexed when others turned it to +nonsense. She called it "The Secret of the Castle," and began it like +this: +</P> + +<P> +"It was a dark and gloomy night in the year 1135, when the young Lord +Almeric reached his impressive and ancestral home. Nothing could be +heard but the sighing of the wind in the turrets and the moaning of +Boris, the great wolfhound. Lord Almeric had ridden far, and was tired, +and the gloominess of his ancestral home weighed on his spirits, which +were naturally buoyant and high. Flinging himself from his gaily +comparisoned horse, and tossing the rein with a muttered, 'Here, +varlet!' to the waiting groom, he opened the massive doors and entered +the hall. What was his amazement to see—" +</P> + +<P> +"Time!" called the Snarker, who had his watch before him, and Hester +had to stop. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory came next. His idea of the game was not very clear, to begin +with, and he had some difficulty in reading what was written, so he was +able to write very little, and that not too helpfully. He therefore +wrote words that were always near his heart: +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> + "—a flying-machine." +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> +and that was all. +</P> + +<P> +Then came Janet. Always wishing to be kind and make things easy, she +longed to get the story back into the spirit and period of poor little +romantic Hester's opening passages. But Gregory had spoiled everything. +Janet, however, did her best: +</P> + +<P> +"The young lord drew back with a start, for he could hardly believe his +eyes. +</P> + +<P> +"'What,' he exclaimed, 'is this strange mixture of wires and wings? Can +my father's astrologer have really done it at last after all these +fruitless years? He must indeed have been busy since I rode forth to +battle. Eftsoons, do I dream or wake?' He touched the strange thing +cautiously, but it did not bite, and gradually there came upon him an +exceeding desire to fly. 'By my halidom,' he cried, 'I will e'en +inquire further into this mystery—'" +</P> + +<P> +Next came Fizzy, who was bent on being funny at any cost. He wrote: +</P> + +<P> +"—as the man said, sticking his fork into the German sausage. 'What +ho, my merry minions, help!' he cried; 'let us draw forth the areoplane +into the home meadow, for I would fain experiment with it. A lord is no +lord unless he can daunt the swallow and the pigeon. So saying, he rang +the alarm-bell, which was only kept for fires and burglaries, and +summoned the household. 'A murrain on ye for being so pestilent slow!' +he shouted. 'Gadsooth, ye knaves! let loose the petrol, or I soar not +into the zenith.'" +</P> + +<P> +Then came Mary, who naturally had no patience with nonsense. She +ignored Fizzy's contribution completely, and got back to romance: +</P> + +<P> +"Meanwhile, seated in her room in the home turret sat the lovely Lady +Elfrida, the picture of woe. Why did her lord tarry? Had she not heard +him ride into the courtyard and give his palfrey to the waiting serf? +Yet where was he? He was to spring up the stairs lightly as a roebuck +of the mountains to welcome her, and now where was he? Little did she +guess—" +</P> + +<P> +Here Shrimp took the paper and wrote: +</P> + +<P> +"—that a brand-new monoplane was blocking up the stairs, so big that +not a roebuck on earth could jump it. But what of the secret of the +castle? Was that the secret? No. Why did the wind shriek and the +deerhound moan? If you would know this, reader, come with me down the +dungeon steps and unbar yonder dark door. For there in the dark recess +of that terrible cell lay—" +</P> + +<P> +The Shrimp, even although time had not been called, was very glad to +leave off here. Robert took the paper. He read the narrative as well as +he could, and added these words: +</P> + +<P> +"But I cannot bring my pen to write the word. It was a secret; indeed, +the secret of the castle. No wonder that the dog moaned and the wind +howled and the Lady Elfrida grieved." +</P> + +<P> +The Snarker, who, after all, had begun the wretched game, and whose +duty it was, therefore, to pull this ruin of a story together again, +ought to have played fair; but instead he went back to what Fizzy had +called an "areoplane," spelling not being taught at Oxford. He +therefore wrote: +</P> + +<P> +"And meanwhile, what of the aeroplane? Fortunately, the night was +short, and there was soon enough light by which to fly, and in a brief +time the seneschals and myrmidons had the great machine in the midst of +the tourney-ground, all ready for flight. Lord Almeric seated himself +and grasped the lever. A firm push from the willing arms of a hundred +carles and hinds, and he was in the air. 'Ah,' he cried, 'odds bodkins, +this is indeed life! Never have I felt such sensations. I will never +walk or ride again. I will sell my motorcar and my horses and my boots. +Flying is for me for ever!"' +</P> + +<P> +Jack now took the paper: +</P> + +<P> +"Lord Almeric was always a very clever man, and it was nothing to him +that he had never flown before. He had studied the pictures of the +flying men in the illustrated papers while waiting at the dentist's, +and he knew the principles of mechanics. No wonder, then, that he flew +with perfect control, circling the home turret, where the Lady Elfrida +was still weeping, with the greatest ease, and calling to her messages +of comfort, which—" +</P> + +<P> +Here the Snarker called "Time!" again, and Mr. Lenox's young brother +took the paper: +</P> + +<P> +"—she could not hear. 'Come down, good lord, or of a verity thou wilt +fall and crack thy coxcomb!' shouted the major-domo from beneath; but +the intrepid Almeric heeded not the warning, and only rose higher and +higher, nearer and nearer to the stars. And then, suddenly, there was +an awful shriek, and his body was seen to be hurtling steadily and +surely towards the earth, gaining speed with every revolution. 'Help, +help!' they cried; 'he must be dashed to pieces; nothing can save him.' +But at that moment—" +</P> + +<P> +Here Horace had to go on. He was not a literary boy, and it took him +more than one minute to read all that had gone before. All he could +therefore add was: +</P> + +<P> +"—he woke up. 'Where am I?' he said. 'You have fallen out of bed,' +said Lady Elfrida." +</P> + +<P> +Poor Hester! her face was a picture of perplexity and indignation when +she came to read the story all through. There was clearly no sensible +ending possible, and she therefore merely wrote: +</P> + +<P> +"Not to this day has the secret of the Castle been solved, but visitors +are still shown, on payment of a shilling each, the place where Lord +Almeric dreamed he fell from a flying-machine in the year 1135." +</P> + +<P> +And then Mr. Lenox's young brother and his friends took them back to +the Mitre, and said good-night. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap08"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 8 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE FIRST DAY +</H3> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother gave them a tremendous breakfast, and called +in Fizzy and Shrimp and the Snarker to help, and then Janet paid the +bill at the Mitre and bought a few things, including two cold chickens, +and they all went down to the little inn yard together and found Kink +waiting for them. +</P> + +<P> +Janet, whose duties as paymaster had now begun in earnest, also paid +Kink's bill; Robert set his pedometer at zero; and the whole party +started, followed by the crowd of idle men and children to which they +were destined to become so accustomed. For a caravan with people in it +who are not gipsies is still an excitement in England. +</P> + +<P> +Kink drove and the others walked behind, or by the side, or in +front—mostly in front, for it was soon discovered that Moses had a +slower walk than any other of the party—in fact, two miles an hour was +more than his rate, although Kink assured them that he could trot from +four to five on the level, and keep it up. +</P> + +<P> +It was a fine but rather windy day, and the dust flew about a little +too much; but everything was too fresh and exciting for that to matter. +What is a little dust on the first day of a caravan expedition! +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox's young brother and his jolly friends turned back at +Wolvercot, as there was work to do even at Oxford. It was not until +their last waving handkerchiefs were out of sight that the children +really felt themselves at the start of their adventurous enterprise. In +fact, Robert put the feeling into words. "Now we're beginning," he said. +</P> + +<P> +Up to this time all had walked; but, glancing at Gregory's lagging +legs, Janet soon began to assume the little mother once again. In +consultation with Kink, it was decided that on fairly level roads Moses +was equal to the Slowcoach plus four passengers, and it was therefore +agreed that there should never be more than that number riding at once, +but, in order that no one should be too tired, they should take it in +turns to enjoy these short periods of ease. +</P> + +<P> +The arrangement made it necessary to appoint a new officer, who was +called the Regulator of Rests, and Mary Rotheram was chosen. Her duties +were not quite as simple as they sound, because Gregory, the youngest, +and Hester, being not very much older and not very strong, were to have +more rides than anyone else; Kink also must be allowed to ride a good +deal. And this meant a little calculation; but Mary was always good at +arithmetic. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, of course, refused point blank to ride a single yard; but he +was rarely sorry, none the less, when the time came to climb the steps +and settle down in a chair. +</P> + +<P> +They had lunch that first day near Yarnton, without making any camp or +cooking anything. The cooking was to be saved for the evening. They +merely tore the two cold chickens to pieces and ate them with +bread-and-butter and stone ginger beer from an inn beside the road. It +is much the best way with a cold chicken. Afterwards bananas, which +someone had told Mrs. Avory were the most sustaining of fruit. +</P> + +<P> +Robert had arranged an easy day to begin with, and they were to go no +farther than Woodstock, where, for those not too tired, there was +Blenheim to see, the wonderful house of the Duke of Marlborough, and +Fair Rosamond's Bower, and the park and the lake. Hester even had hopes +of finding a distressed Blenheim spaniel puppy in some romantic sort of +way, and adopting it for life. +</P> + +<P> +But there were none of these things for them. Indeed, caravaners very +soon get out of the habit of making plans at all. It is all too +uncertain. The only things that really are certain are work and delay. +They got no nearer to Blenheim than to peer through its gates and to +recite, very imperfectly, the verses about old Caspar's work and little +Wilhelmine. +</P> + +<P> +At about half-past three they entered Woodstock, and, after passing +through the village and doing a little shopping there, surrounded by +all Woodstock's children who were not in school, they began to look +about for a camping-place. And this needs more thought than one might +suppose, for there must be some shelter from the wind, and water must +not be too distant. Also one does not want to be very close to a busy +and dusty road. +</P> + +<P> +Kink, who had gone off on a little tour of inspection, came back at +last and said he had found an excellent field, high and dry, and +sheltered too. Stopping a labourer, they found that the farmer was Mr. +Gosden, of Blackett's; and Gregory and Mary Rotheram hurried off to the +farm-house, which was a few fields off, to ask permission, and get some +milk, and perhaps eggs and butter. +</P> + +<P> +They found the door of the kitchen open, but no one there. It was a +large, low kitchen, with a very red brick floor, and it led into the +dairy, where they could see the flat pans of milk. The fire was burning +so brightly that they knew the farmer's wife could not be far away. +Over the mantelpiece was a gun. Two or three highly polished and highly +coloured grocer's calendars—pictures of beautiful women—were on the +walls. Sides of bacon hung from the ceiling. The whole place smelled of +wood smoke and plenty. The children noticed all these things as they +stood in the doorway, every now and then knocking. +</P> + +<P> +At last they heard steps, and a very wide and smiling woman entered the +kitchen from another door. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," she asked, "what can I do for you?" +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, proud to be really beginning his duties, said: "Please, may we +camp tonight in one of your fields? We're living in a caravan." +</P> + +<P> +"You've come to the wrong person," said Mrs. Gosden. "That's my +husband's affair, and he's rather particular. He's gone to Chipping +Norton; but," she added, as Gregory began to look miserable, "he'll be +back any minute now. You sit down and have a cup of tea with me and +wait for him." +</P> + +<P> +So they sat down, and Mrs. Gosden made the tea, which she took from a +highly coloured tin, covered also with beautiful women, and they had +with it bread and butter and lettuce, and talked. +</P> + +<P> +"And how do you like gipsying?" Mrs. Gosden asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I think it's going to be splendid," Mary said; "but we've only just +begun." +</P> + +<P> +"Then you haven't slept out before?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"My word!" said Mrs. Gosden; "what sore throats you'll have in the +morning! Roughing it's all very well by day, but give me a comfortable +bed to lay in of a night. That's me!" +</P> + +<P> +At this moment the sound of wheels was heard, and Mrs. Gosden jumped up +and added some hot water to the tea and cut some more bread-and-butter. +"That's father," she said, and Mr. Gosden soon after came in. +</P> + +<P> +He was a big man with whiskers under his chin all the way round, but +none on the rest of his face. +</P> + +<P> +"Hello!" he said; "visitors!" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Mrs. Gosden, "a young lady and gentleman who are living in +a caravan, and want to camp in the hay takers. At least, I think it's +the hay takers from what they say of it." +</P> + +<P> +"Ho, do they?" said Mr. Gosden. "A nice state of things," he added with +a twinkle, "when every one who comes to ask leave to spoil one of my +fields gets a nice tea given them!" and he laughed. +</P> + +<P> +"We shouldn't spoil it," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Mr. Gosden, "perhaps you'll tell me how you make a fire. +Isn't it on the ground? And what do you do with your rubbish? Clean it +up and take it along with you? Not too likely. I've had caravaners here +before." +</P> + +<P> +"We will," said Mary, "I promise"—seeing as she spoke the necessity of +a new official being appointed at once: the Remover of Camp Litter. +</P> + +<P> +"I said the other day," continued the farmer, "that never again would I +let a caravan into my fields, didn't I, Bet? And how can I go back on +that?" +</P> + +<P> +"You did say it," said Mrs. Gosden, "true enough, but you're halways +breaking your word. You said you'd bring me a new alarm clock the next +time you went to Oxford, and I've never got it yet, and that's months +ago." +</P> + +<P> +"Never mind," said Mr. Gosden; "it means longer in bed for you. Well," +he added to Mary, "I'll come down with you and look at the turnout and +see. But I must finish my tea first." +</P> + +<P> +Never, thought Mary, could anyone have eaten so much tea or taken so +long over it, and she was in despair about the others waiting in the +road, hungry and impatient; but there was nothing for it but to be +quiet, and at last Mr. Gosden was ready. +</P> + +<P> +The others, it was true, had become very tired of waiting, but they had +spent some of the time in bringing water from the nearest cottage. No +one who gets really cross from waiting should ever go away in a +caravan. Mr. Gosden had a good look at all of them and at Kink before +he said anything. He then gave them leave to camp very near the hedge, +and he asked them to promise to be gone by ten the next morning, as he +had some cattle coming in, and to clear up thoroughly, and then off he +went. He stepped back to tell them to come up to the farm in the +morning for milk and butter and to report on their night, and started +off once more. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, who had clearly been puzzling over something, ran after him. +</P> + +<P> +"Well?" said Mr. Gosden. +</P> + +<P> +"Where do they take the hay?" Gregory said. +</P> + +<P> +"Who?" Mr. Gosden asked. +</P> + +<P> +"The hay takers," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"I don't understand," said Mr Gosden. +</P> + +<P> +"What hay takers? It's not a hay meadow. We graze it." +</P> + +<P> +"Mrs. Gosden," said Gregory, "called the field the hay takers." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Gosden laughed loudly. "That's my missis's pronounciation," he +said. "She's much too fond of haitches: she will put them in the wrong +place. I often correct her, but it's no use. It's nothing to do with +hay. It's the size of the field—the size, don't you see? The eight +acres: that's what she meant to say, bless her old heart!" +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap09"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 9 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE FIRST NIGHT +</H3> + +<P> +"Well," said Janet, "that's a very nice start. It would have been +horrid if the first farmer had been crusty." +</P> + +<P> +"Ah," said Mary Rotheram, "but you should see his wife! It was she who +did it for us really. Perhaps after dinner we might walk up there to +thank her." +</P> + +<P> +After dinner! How recklessly young caravaners can talk. But you shall +hear.... +</P> + +<P> +Kink with much skill got Moses and the Slowcoach into the field and +shut the gate, and then the great carriage rocked and swayed over the +grass, making no sound but a mixture of creaking and crockery. At last +he brought it to a stand just under a tall hedge, and Moses was at once +taken out and roped to a crowbar driven in the ground. +</P> + +<P> +"The first thing," said Janet, "is the fire," and Jack and Horace were +sent off to collect wood and pile it near the Slowcoach, and fix the +tripod over it. As it was quite dry, one of Mr. Scott's lighters soon +had it blazing, and Mary, as chief cook, threw quickly into the water +in the pot the large piece of brisket they had bought at Woodstock, +together with potatoes and carrots and little onions and pepper and +salt. +</P> + +<P> +That done, and leaving Horace with strict orders to keep the fire fed, +the others began to unpack. First of all mackintosh sheets and rugs +were thrown on the ground round the fire, and then Robert and Jack drew +out their tent and set it up on the farther side of the fire, some four +or five yards away, so that the fire was midway between the tent and +the caravan. +</P> + +<P> +The tent was similar to those which gipsies use—not with a central +pole, but stretched over half-hoops which were stuck in the ground. It +was wide enough for three boys to lie comfortably in their +sleeping-bags side by side. Gregory was to sleep in the caravan with +the girls; Kink was to go to Woodstock. +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile, with all of them, except Mary and Gregory, who had done well +with Mrs. Gosden's tea, the pangs of hunger were at work, and the steam +of the great iron pot hanging over the fire did nothing to allay them. +Mary and Janet every now and then thrust a fork into the meat, but its +resistance to the point was heart-breaking. +</P> + +<P> +"Hadn't you better have some biscuits to go on with?" Janet said at +last; but the others refused. It would spoil the stew, they thought. +</P> + +<P> +"At any rate," Janet said, "let's get everything ready, not only for +supper,"—you see, it wasn't called dinner any longer,—"but for +washing-up afterwards." +</P> + +<P> +So Kink went off for some more water, and a large basin was set on a +box, and dishcloths were put by it; and a rackety search began for +plates, and knives and forks, and mugs, and tinned fruits, and more +plates and spoons and moist sugar, and all the other things which +appear on our tables at mealtimes as naturally as leaves on the trees, +but which in a caravan mean so much fuss and perplexity. In fact, all +the children returned home with a vastly increased respect for the +ability and punctuality of Collins and Eliza Pollard and Jan Masters. +</P> + +<P> +For a while the air was simply full of questions and remarks, some of +which I copy down, and you may guess who asked them. +</P> + +<P> +"I say, Janet, where's the tin-opener?" +</P> + +<P> +"Janet, dear, ought we to have napkins?" +</P> + +<P> +"Hester, you little nuisance, get off that box; it's got the bread in +it." +</P> + +<P> +"Hester, stop reading and come and help." +</P> + +<P> +"Horace, the fire's nearly out." +</P> + +<P> +"I wish some of you would stop talking and tell me where the tin-opener +is." +</P> + +<P> +"Jack, you lazy ruffian, why don't you get some more sticks?" +</P> + +<P> +"I say, Kink, do you think this old brisket will ever be done?" +</P> + +<P> +"Kink, does it ruin potatoes and things to stew too long?" +</P> + +<P> +"Kink, is there any decent way of opening a tin without a tin-opener?" +</P> + +<P> +"I'm perfectly certain the sugar was in this cupboard. Gregory, have +you been at the sugar?" +</P> + +<P> +"It's a good deal harder than a rock, still." +</P> + +<P> +"Can you make a tin-opener out of a fork?" +</P> + +<P> +"I am perfectly certain I saw the corkscrew this morning." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I say, I didn't come out in this old caravan to die of hunger and +neglect." +</P> + +<P> +"Mary, where did you put the milkjug?" +</P> + +<P> +"Let's have that beast of a brisket out and cut him up, and put him in +again in smaller pieces." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Jack, how clever you are! However did you think of that?" +</P> + +<P> +"I expect it's hunger sharpening his wits." +</P> + +<P> +"I say, it's all very well to say cut him up small; but he's red hot. +I'm scalded horribly." +</P> + +<P> +"So am I." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, and so am I, the way you make him jump about. It splashed right +over here." +</P> + +<P> +"Kink, come and help us hold the brisket down while we cut him up." +</P> + +<P> +The result of all this confusion was the appointment of two or three +new officials. Horace was made Keeper of the Tinopener, and Gregory +Keeper of the Cork screw, while Jack was given the title of Preserver +of Enough Oil in the Beatrice Stove, because you can do wonders with a +Beatrice stove while waiting for the real fire to burn up—but only if +there's oil in it. +</P> + +<P> +Jack's brilliant device of slicing the brisket was successful, and by +half-past seven they were seated on their rugs round the fire eating +the most supreme stew of the century, as Mary Rotheram called it. They +ate it in soup-plates, with a great deal of juice, into which they +dropped their bread. +</P> + +<P> +Suddenly old Kink, who had been eating steadily for a quarter of an +hour just outside the circle, stepped up to what we may call the +supper-table, with his watch in his hand. +</P> + +<P> +"Miss Janet," he said, "there's only a quarter of an hour to get to +Woodstock to send off the telegram." +</P> + +<P> +Janet looked at the official telegraphist in alarm. "Oh, Bobbie," she +said, "how dreadful if we had missed it! You must simply run!" +</P> + +<P> +Robert sprang to his feet in a moment. +</P> + +<P> +"Give me a shilling," he said. "I'll make it up as I go along. Keep +some tinned pears for me." +</P> + +<P> +"I'll come too," said Jack, and off they bolted. +</P> + +<P> +They reached the post-office just in time to despatch this message: +</P> + +<P> +"Avory Gables Chiswick just finished glorious brisket all well love." +</P> + +<P> +On their return Robert and Jack found washing-up in full swing, and +were not sorry to be able to eat their pears in comfort and watch the +others being busy. +</P> + +<P> +The light was now going fast; the bats flitted over their heads, and +there was no sound save the talking and clattering of the washers-up +and the grinding of Diogenes's teeth on the brisket bone. Various +projects for spending the last hours of the day had been talked of, but +now that it was here no one seemed to have the slightest energy left +either to walk into Blenheim Park or cross the three or four fields to +Blackett's. In fact, they wanted but one thing, and that was to creep +into their very novel beds and see what it was like to sleep like +gipsies. +</P> + +<P> +Everything was therefore put ready for breakfast. A last load of wood +was brought for the fire, Diogenes was transferred to the long rope +which enabled him to range all round the camp, and Kink said good night +and trudged off to the village inn. +</P> + +<P> +And so the first night began. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory was a little fractious for a while, considering it an indignity +to be sleeping in the caravan instead of with the men; but he was no +sooner tucked into his berth than he fell asleep and forgot the insult. +The girls were also very soon on their little shelves, either sleeping +or drowsily enjoying the thought of sleep; but Robert and Jack and +Horace did not hurry. The fire was still warm, and they huddled round +it with Diogenes, and talked, and listened to Moses crunching the +grass, and made plans for the morrow. Then at last they carried the +sheeting and the rugs to the tent, and crept into their sacks and +prepared to sleep. +</P> + +<P> +With the exception of Gregory, no one slept very well. Hester was +frightened by an owl which hooted close to the caravan, and Janet had +to hold her hand for quite a long time, which is a very uncomfortable +thing to do when you are in the berth below, and then, just as she was +going off again, a rabbit, pursued by a stoat, screamed right under +their wheels, as it seemed, and Hester's fright began anew. +</P> + +<P> +Jack and Horace were probably a little over excited, for they were very +restless; and to be restless on the hard ground—with no springs, as in +our beds at home—is to get sore and wakeful; while Robert was intently +conscious of every sound and if you sleep in a field you hear thousands +of them—all the rustlings of the little shy nocturnal animals, tiny +squeakings and shrillings in the grass, as well as the cries of the +birds of prey. Now and then, too, a spider ran over his face and made +him jump, and very early the strong light poured into the mouth of the +tent and made it seem absurd to be in bed any longer. +</P> + +<P> +The result was, that it was not till the morning that they began to +sleep properly at all, and that made them much less ready to get up +than they had expected to be. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap10"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 10 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE SECOND CARAVAN +</H3> + +<P> +The arrival of Kink at half-past six was a great relief. Robert hailed +him, and Kink said it was a beautiful morning. +</P> + +<P> +"Don't you get up yet," he said, after Robert and Janet had both told +him of the night. "I'll make the fire and boil the kettle, and fetch +water, and so on, and you get up when I tell you. Otherwise, you'll all +be too tired and get ill." +</P> + +<P> +And so they had the blessed experience of lying still and drowsy, and +hearing Kink move about for their comfort. +</P> + +<P> +The boys were up first, and made extremely noisy toilets in the +washing-up basin, and then Jack and Gregory went off to the farm for +milk and butter and eggs, and Mrs. Gosden, who seemed, early as it was, +to be in the very middle of a day's work, and who refused to believe +that the boys were not deceiving her when they denied having sore +throats, gave them leave to gather strawberries, so that their return +to the Slowcoach was a new triumph. +</P> + +<P> +Their breakfast was chiefly scrambled eggs, ham, and strawberries, and +by ten o'clock, true to their bargain, they were out of the field and +on the highroad, and no sign of their camp remained, save a black +circle caused by the fire and a slight crushing of the grass all round +it. +</P> + +<P> +They had gone a very little way before Robert, who had already been to +Woodstock with the morning telegram, began to realize that he was in +for a blister on his left heel, and, on asking the others, he found +that they were not too comfortable either. +</P> + +<P> +"This means," he told Mary, speaking to her in her official capacity of +Regulator of Rests, "that we shall have to ride a good deal, because we +simply must go twelve miles today, or we shan't be at Stratford in time +for mother tomorrow afternoon." +</P> + +<P> +Mary therefore ordered them in and out of the Slowcoach with great +frequency, but it was not a great deal of use, for they hobbled more +and more. +</P> + +<P> +At Enstone they stopped for lunch, which consisted of a tongue and +bananas and ginger beer; and here they met a friendly tinker, drinking +his ale outside the inn, who, noticing their lameness, gave them some +good advice. "If you can't stop and rest," he said, "you should soap +your stockings, and it's a good thing now and then to change the +stockings from left to right." They found that the soap was really +useful, and got on much better, and a little later they were overtaken +by two young men on a walking tour, who slowed down to fall into step +for a while with Robert and Jack. One gave them some hints. "When you +are very tired," he said, "it helps to hold something in front of you +at full length—even a walking stick will do, or a coat rolled up. It +pulls you along. You look like an idiot, of course, but that doesn't +matter. No one who minds looking foolish will ever have a really good +time. It is a good thing to prevent a stitch in your side to carry a +little pebble in your mouth. Squeezing a cork in each hand helps." +</P> + +<P> +"Another way to make walking easier," said the other young man, "is to +sing as you go. All sing together—marching songs, if you know any, +such as 'Tramp, boys, tramp.' That's what soldiers do on long marches, +and it makes all the difference." +</P> + +<P> +They didn't take the road to Chipping Norton, but stopped at the town, +while Kink, who had no blisters, went into the town to get the +evening's dinner; and meanwhile Janet persuaded the Beatrice stove to +give them tea. It was while here that they had their first experience +of Diogenes as a guardian, for he frightened away two tramps who seemed +likely to be troublesome. +</P> + +<P> +On Kink's return, Robert urged them on, for he had marked down on his +map a spot called the Hollow, about five miles farther on, near Long +Compton, which sounded exceedingly attractive as a campingground, +especially to one who had read "Lavengro" and remembered the Dingle +there, near Long Melton; and hither, very footsore, but still brave and +happy, they came about half-past four, and made a very snug camp in it +without asking anyone's leave. +</P> + +<P> +It was not time for supper, and they were very glad to lie about and be +lazy while the stew was slowly cooking. Robert and Janet and Mary +consulted very deeply about the morrow, and at last decided that it +would be best to remain there all the day and get their blisters cured +with Mr. Lenox's ointment, and therefore a telegram would have to go to +Mrs. Avory at once, telling her not to go to Stratford till Saturday, +"and also," Robert added, "to bring my bicycle. We can easily fasten it +on the roof, and it's going to be frightfully necessary often and +often. This evening, for instance. Here we are, goodness knows how far +from a telegraph-office, and everyone lame except Kinky, who'll have to +go." +</P> + +<P> +Kink, however, had luck, for he met a baker's cart on its way to +Chipping Norton, and the man not only said he would take the telegram +and the letter, but he agreed to bring out a number of things to eat +the next day. +</P> + +<P> +Feeling rested and well fed, they therefore went to bed that Thursday +night much more likely to sleep than on the night before. +</P> + +<P> +And, indeed, everyone did sleep well, except, once again, Robert. +Whatever the reason, he was very wide awake; and at some hour in the +middle of the night he crept out of his sack and walked into the open, +away from the trees, intent upon comparing the magnetic north—which +his compass gave him—with the true north, which anyone can find by +looking at the Great Bear sprawling across the skies and getting the +Pole Star from its pointers. +</P> + +<P> +Having marked the difference on the glass of his compass with a spot of +ink from his fountain-pen, Robert returned to the Hollow; but to his +astonishment and alarm, on reaching the caravan he could not find the +tent. There was the Slowcoach right enough, with its white blinds +glimmering, and he could hear Moses munching close by; but there was no +tent, and apparently no Diogenes. +</P> + +<P> +Robert was not a timid boy, but the lateness of the hour and the +loneliness of the place and this extraordinary occurrence affected his +nerves, so that he suddenly had a panic, and, running up the steps, he +beat on the caravan-door as if wolves were after him. +</P> + +<P> +"Hullo! hullo!" cried a gruff voice that certainly did not belong to +any of the girls. "What the dickens do you want?" +</P> + +<P> +Robert nearly fell off the steps in his surprise. "Please," he said, "I +want the Slowcoach." +</P> + +<P> +For answer the door opened, and a big head and beard and a pyjama arm +were pushed out. +</P> + +<P> +"Slowcoach?" the head said. "What Slowcoach? There's no Slowcoach here." +</P> + +<P> +"The Slowcoach is the name of our caravan," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, it is?" said the head. "Then it's over there. I saw it as I came +in. This is the Snail." +</P> + +<P> +"Thank you very much," said Robert, who had quite recovered his +composure. "How late are you going to stay here in the morning?" +</P> + +<P> +"I don't know," said the head, yawning vastly. "It depends on the +country. I shan't go till after breakfast, anyhow. But I'm much too +tired to talk now. Goodnight, Slowcoach." +</P> + +<P> +"Good night, Snail," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +And that is how the Avories came to know the great Hamish MacAngus; for +when Robert led them round to visit him the next morning ("And it is +right for us to call first," said Janet, "since we have lived here +longer"), they found that the owner of the Snail was nothing less than +the famous—But I must tell you in the next chapter. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap11"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 11 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE WAYSIDE FRIEND +</H3> + +<P> +Mr. MacAngus had just finished his ham and eggs, and was lighting his +pipe. +</P> + +<P> +"Good morning, Slowcoaches," he said. "I'm very pleased to see you. Sit +down wherever you like. Furniture by Dame Nature; everything as nice as +Mother makes it. This is a friendly, reasonable hour to meet. That +young brother of yours—I suppose he is your brother"—pointing to +Robert—"pays calls in the middle of the night. He seems to think every +caravan in the world belongs to him. How a man who lives in a London +terrace knows his house I never could understand, but to recognize +one's own caravan ought to be quite easy." +</P> + +<P> +Mr MacAngus, you must understand, did not say all this in one breath, +for he was a slow man. But it reads as if he did, because none of the +others uttered a word. It was all too bewildering and also too amusing. +He was so big and so strange, and he had such a twinkle in his eye, +that they preferred to let him go on, knowing that whatever he said +would be entertaining. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," he said at last, "now we must stop talking nonsense and +introduce ourselves. But first I should like you all to guess who I am +and what I do for a living. You first," he said, pointing to Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"I think you are a kind of hermit," she said at last. +</P> + +<P> +"Right," he said. "But that's not enough. What do I do? You," he added, +pointing to Mary, "what do you think I do?" +</P> + +<P> +"Perhaps you lecture," said Mary, "or preach. No, I don't think you +preach. I think very likely you speak to villagers about +politics—tariff reform and things like that." +</P> + +<P> +The big man laughed. "Very well," he said. "Now you," to Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"I think you're a gentleman gipsy," said Robert. "Like Lavengro. Are +you?" +</P> + +<P> +"In a way," said the stranger, "but I shan't tell you till you've all +guessed." +</P> + +<P> +Jack Rotheram then guessed that he was a spy, and this amused him +immensely. +</P> + +<P> +"In a kind of way I am that too," he answered. "At any rate, I am +always looking out for the fatness of the land." +</P> + +<P> +Hester guessed he had a broken heart because of a disappointment in +love, and was living all alone because he hated the world, like Lord +Byron. +</P> + +<P> +He liked this most of all, and laughed for a long time—much longer, he +explained afterwards, than a broken-hearted Lord Byron would have done. +</P> + +<P> +Horace Campbell did not exactly guess, but said that he hoped that the +stranger was a gentleman burglar—a kind of Raffles and Robin Hood in +one—who robbed only the wicked rich and helped the poor. "As," he +added, "I want to." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, do you?" said the big man. "Well, don't rob me, anyway. Wait till +I have led the Snail to a place of safety." +</P> + +<P> +And lastly Gregory guessed. "I think," he said, "you are a vagabond." +</P> + +<P> +"Gregory!" cried Janet; "you mustn't say things like that," while the +stranger laughed again. +</P> + +<P> +"Why not?" Gregory inquired. "I mean like the Wandering Jew Mr. Crawley +told us about. He called him the prince of vagabonds." +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said the stranger, "Gregory's right. I am a vagabond. But I'm +something else too, and I'll tell you. I'm an artist. My name is Hamish +MacAngus. I live in the Snail most of the summer, and in London in the +winter. I cover pieces of cardboard and canvas with paint more or less +like trees, and cows, and sheep, and skies, and people who have more +pennies than brains buy them from me; and then I take the pennies, and +change them for the nice sensible things of life, such as bacon, and +tobacco, and oats. My horse's name is Pencil. I came here from Banbury, +and I am making slowly for Cropthorne. Now tell me all about +yourselves. Tell me in the order of age." +</P> + +<P> +The children looked at each other, and laughed. +</P> + +<P> +"You first," said Mr. MacAngus, again to Janet; "you're the eldest, I +can see." +</P> + +<P> +"My name," said Janet, "is Janet Avory. I live in Chiswick. Our caravan +is the Slowcoach. We are going to Stratford-on-Avon. Our horse is +called Moses. Our—" +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Janet," said Hester, "you're not leaving anything for us to tell!" +</P> + +<P> +"Very well," said Janet, "that's all." +</P> + +<P> +"My name," said Mary, "is Mary Rotheram. I am the daughter of a doctor +at Chiswick. My brother and I are the Avories' guests. I am fourteen. +Father has one of your pictures." +</P> + +<P> +"Good judge!" Mr. MacAngus said. +</P> + +<P> +"Now, Macbeth," he said, pointing to Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"My name isn't Macbeth," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the artist, "but that's how I think of you. Why? Can anyone +tell me?" +</P> + +<P> +"I can," said Hester. "Because he woke you up—'Macbeth hath murdered +sleep.'" +</P> + +<P> +"Splendid!" said Mr. MacAngus. "As a reward you shall tell your story +before Macbeth does." +</P> + +<P> +"I am nine," said Hester. "My name is Hester. I adore Shakespeare. I am +Janet's sister." +</P> + +<P> +"Good!" said Mr. MacAngus. "We will read Shakespeare together this +afternoon. From the way you walk I can see that this is blister day. We +will all take it easy and be happy, and you shall cure your lameness. +Now, Mac." +</P> + +<P> +"I am thirteen," said Robert. "I am the geographer of the party. I am +sorry for murdering your sleep, but glad, too, because you're so jolly." +</P> + +<P> +"Now you," said Mr. MacAngus to Jack Rotheram. +</P> + +<P> +"I am not an Avory," said Jack. "I am Mary's brother. I am twelve. I am +going to Osborne next year." +</P> + +<P> +"Very sensible of you," said Mr. MacAngus. "And you, sir," he added to +Horace Campbell, "the burglar's friend." +</P> + +<P> +"My name is Horace Campbell," he replied. "I am the son of the Vicar of +Chiswick. I am nine. I am also the Keeper of the Tin-opener." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said Jack, "I forgot that. I am the Preserver of Enough Oil +in the Beatrice Stove." +</P> + +<P> +"I am proud to meet such important personages," said Mr. MacAngus. "And +now, lastly, you,"—he said to Gregory,—"the little nipper, the tiny +tot of the party." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory was furious. He scowled at the artist like thunder. +</P> + +<P> +"Go on," said Mr. MacAngus; "don't mind me. I always tease little +important boys." +</P> + +<P> +"My name is Gregory Bruce Avory," said Gregory, "and I am seven. I am +going to be an aviator. I have to ask the farmers if we may camp in +their fields, and I keep the corkscrew. Please tell me," he added, "why +you call your horse Pencil?" +</P> + +<P> +"Because he draws me," said Mr. MacAngus. +</P> + +<P> +"And now," he continued, "let us do the most interesting thing in the +world to people like ourselves: let us examine each other's caravans." +</P> + +<P> +After they had finished visiting each other, and Mr. MacAngus had given +them, speaking as an old campaigner, some very useful if simple hints, +such as always pitching the tent with its back to the wind; and keeping +inside a supply of dry wood to light the fires with; and tying fern on +Moses's head, against the flies; and carrying cabbage leaves in their +own hats, against the heat; and walking with long staves instead of +short walking sticks—after this he made them all sit round their fire, +and sketched them, and the picture hangs at this very moment in Mrs. +Avory's bedroom at "The Gables." +</P> + +<P> +After lunch, which he shared with them, adding to the pot some very +fragrant mixed herbs from a little packet, they lay on the grass round +him, and he read to them from Shakespeare—first from "Macbeth," which +was very dreadful, but fine, and then from "Midsummer Night's Dream" +and the "Winter's Tale." +</P> + +<P> +After supper he took them outside the Hollow, and they lay on their +backs and studied the stars, about which he knew everything that can be +known, and nothing whatever that Gregory wanted to know. +</P> + +<P> +And they went to bed early, to be ready for the long journey on the +morrow—with their feet covered with Mr. Lenox's ointment—declaring it +was one of the most delightful days they had ever spent. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap12"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 12 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +STRATFORD-ON-AVON +</H3> + +<P> +The next morning was dull, but dry, and they were ready early, for +there were sixteen miles to be done before Stratford-on-Avon was +reached. They were, however, easy miles, twelve of them being on the +flat beside the Stour. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. MacAngus had decided to stay on in those parts a little longer +before making for Cropthorne, and therefore, after helping with the +inspanning, as he called packing up, he said good-bye, but gave them a +list of the places where it was worth while asking for him. They were +sorry to lose him, but the immediate future was too exciting, with +Stratford-on-Avon and Mrs. Avory in it, to allow time for regrets. +</P> + +<P> +After a day entirely without any adventures they found Mrs. Avory. She +was waiting for them at the Shakespeare Hotel, which is one of the most +fascinating inns in England, with staircases and passages in lavish +profusion, and bedrooms named after the plays. Hester and her mother +slept in the "Winter's Tale," Janet and Mary in "Cymbeline." Robert and +Gregory were "The Two Gentlemen of Verona" for the time being, and +Horace and Jack lay in the "Comedy of Errors." Kink and Diogenes were +somewhere at the back, and the Slowcoach was in the yard, surrounded by +motor-cars. +</P> + +<P> +At the next table at dinner—in a beautiful old room with green matting +on the floor and a huge open fireplace—sat an old gentleman with white +hair and bright eyes behind very luminous spectacles, and from the tone +in which he talked to the waiter they guessed him to be an American. +After dinner he smoked cigarettes in an immensely long holder of amber +and gold, and now and then smiled at the children. +</P> + +<P> +They were all rather tired, and went quickly to bed. Robert, who, you +remember, had been so contemptuous of the Shakespeare Hotel blankets +and sheets, slept a full ten hours; never, indeed, can a Gentleman of +Verona have passed a better night; and the others expressed no grief at +having to lie in proper beds once more. +</P> + +<P> +When they came down to breakfast the next morning, they found a letter +addressed to +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> + Mr. KINK'S CHILDREN'S PARTY.<BR> + Shakespeare Hotel,<BR> + Stratford-on-Avon.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Robert looked at it, and threw it down. +</P> + +<P> +"Very offensive," he said. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory handed it to Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Whoever can it be from?" Janet asked, turning it over and over. "The +postmark is Chiswick." +</P> + +<P> +"A good way to find out," said Gregory, "is to open it." +</P> + +<P> +Janet did so, and read it, laughing. "It's an attempt at a nasty letter +from William," she said. "He's pretending to be cross because Jack won. +Poor William! Listen: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR LITTLE ONES, +<BR><BR> +"I hope you are having a good time in that stuffy caravan, and manage +to avoid blisters. I thought you would like to hear that father has +given me leave to go to Sheppey, and stay for three days with Mr. +Fowler, who has promised to take me up in an aeroplane. I am also to +have riding-lessons, and Aunt Mildred has promised me a pony, being so +sorry to hear that I was done out of the caravan trip by a fluke. Uncle +Jim has sent me 5 pounds. According to the papers the weather is going +to break up directly. Your affectionate and prosperous friend, +<BR><BR> +WILLIAM ROTHERAM. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Jack was speechless with fury. "The story-teller!" he cried. +</P> + +<P> +But Mary laughed. "I think it's rather clever," she said. "It almost +took me in." +</P> + +<P> +"Do you mean to say it's a good joke?" Jack asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I think so," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"I don't," said Jack. "I think jokes ought to be straightforward. I +think you ought to know exactly that they are jokes." +</P> + +<P> +"Miss Bingham," said Robert, "would say that such inventions were in +poor taste." +</P> + +<P> +"So they are," said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"Poor William!" said Mrs. Avory. "You oughtn't to be cross with him, +Jack. After all, he did lose when you tossed up." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Jack. "But, look here, Mrs. Avory, suppose some of it's +true." +</P> + +<P> +At this they all roared, for it showed what Jack's trouble really was. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Jack," said his sister, "you mustn't want everything. Even if it +were true, you ought to be much happier here." +</P> + +<P> +"Have some more coffee, Jack," Mrs. Avory said quickly. +</P> + +<P> +As it was Sunday, they went to Trinity Church (which usually costs +sixpence to enter, because of Shakespeare's tomb—a charge of which I +am sure the poet would not approve). As the words in the sermon grew +longer and longer, Hester made renewed efforts to get a glimpse of the +tomb, but it was in a part of the chancel that was not within sight. +She had instead to study the windows, which she always liked to do in +church; and she found herself repeating the lines on the tomb, which +she had long known: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "Good friend, for Jesus sake forbeare<BR> + To digg the dust enclosed heare:<BR> + Bleste be ye man Yt spares these stones,<BR> + And curst be he yt moves my bones."<BR> +</P> + +<P> +On Sunday, even after service, the church was not on view, but the next +day it was there that they hurried directly after breakfast, Hester +carrying with her some little bunches of flowers. They paid their +sixpences, and made straight for Shakespeare's tomb, and stood before +the coloured bust—that bust which you see in reproduction at every +turn in this loyal town. It is perhaps more interesting than +impressive, and the children had a serious argument over it, Jack even +daring to say that the face was stupid-looking, and Gregory declining +almost petulantly to consider Shakespeare in the least like a swan. +</P> + +<P> +Poor Hester, how to defend him against these horrid boys! +</P> + +<P> +Janet came to the rescue by saying that Jack was probably thinking that +the forehead was too high; but a high forehead was a sign of genius. +</P> + +<P> +"It may be so," said Jack, "but father has a poor patient with water on +the brain just like that." (What can you do with people, who talk in +this way?) +</P> + +<P> +"But, of course," said Horace, "it doesn't matter what he looked like +really, because he didn't write the plays at all. They were written by +Roger Bacon." +</P> + +<P> +This led to acute trouble. +</P> + +<P> +"How can you say such wicked things!" Hester protested, bursting into +tears. +</P> + +<P> +"But I read it in a book," said Horace, who had not wished to hurt her, +but still desired to serve the truth. "It was sent to father." +</P> + +<P> +"Everything in books isn't true," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I say!" said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course it's not," said Mary. "Books are always being replied to and +squashed." +</P> + +<P> +"Well, this book was by a Member of Parliament," said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +This was very awkward for the defenders of Shakespeare. What were they +to do? +</P> + +<P> +Gregory, who had not seemed to be interested in the debate, settled it. +He walked up to an old man who was standing near them, and asked him. +"It isn't true," he said, "is it, that Shakespeare's works were written +by Bacon?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the old man, "it's a wicked falsehood." +</P> + +<P> +"How do you know?" asked Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"How do I know!" exclaimed the old man. "Why, I've lived at Stratford, +man and boy, seventy years, and of course I know." +</P> + +<P> +"Of course," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"But a Member of Parliament says it was Bacon," Horace persisted. +</P> + +<P> +"What's he Member for?" the old man asked. "Eh? Not for +Stratford-on-Avon, I'll be bound." +</P> + +<P> +"I don't know," said Horace, who had nothing else to say. +</P> + +<P> +"Take my advice," the old man replied, "and don't believe anyone who +says that Shakespeare wanted help. Look at that brow!" +</P> + +<P> +"But he isn't like a swan, is he?" Gregory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course not," said the old man. "That's poetry. If he had been like +a swan, it wouldn't have been poetry to call him one." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory pondered for a little while. Then he asked: "Would it be poetry +to call a swan a Shakespeare?" +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Gregory, come away," said Janet; "you're too clever this morning!" +</P> + +<P> +Hester, however, still had much to do, and she refused to go until she +had laid some flowers also on Anne Hathaway's tomb and on that of +Susanna, Shakespeare's daughter, who married Dr. Hall. She also copied +the epitaph, which begins: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "Witty above her sexe, but that's not all,<BR> + Wise to Salvation was good Mistress Hall."<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +But I am going too fast, for this was Monday morning, and we have not +yet accounted for all of Sunday. The only Shakespeare relic which they +visited that day was the site of his house, New Place, close to the +hotel. The house, of course, should be standing now, and would be, but +for the behaviour of a deplorable clergyman, as you shall hear. +Shakespeare, grown rich, and thinking of returning to Stratford from +London, bought New Place for his home; he died there in 1616, and his +wife and daughter, or his descendants, lived in it for many years +after. And then it was bought by the Rev. Francis Gastrell, a Cheshire +vicar, who began by cutting down Shakespeare's mulberry tree—under +which not only the poet had sat, but also Garrick—because he was +annoyed that visitors wished to see it; and then, a little later, in +his rage at the demand for the poor rate (a tax to help support the +workhouse, which, since he was living elsewhere, he considered he ought +not to have to pay), he pulled down the building too. That was in 1759, +and now the site of the house is a public garden where you may walk and +still see of this memorable habitation only the traces of some of the +walls and Shakespeare's well. +</P> + +<P> +They found the old gentleman from the hotel in the garden reading his +guidebook, and it was he who told them the story. "So far as I can +understand," said he, "nothing was done to the man at all. Nobody +horsewhipped him. It was lucky it did not happen in America." +</P> + +<P> +The old gentleman, whose name was Nicholas Imber, and who came from +Philadelphia, then took them to see Harvard house, of which he, as an +American, was very proud, and they drifted about with him, and looked +at other of the old Stratford buildings. +</P> + +<P> +All the time he kept on saying quietly to himself: "Vengeance on the +Rev. Francis Gastrell!" +</P> + +<P> +"Perhaps," said Hester, "there is a mistake in the verses in the +church. Perhaps they ought to be: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "'Bleste be ye man yt spares these bones,<BR> + And curst be he yt moves my stones.'<BR> +</P> + +<P> +That would mean the Rev. Francis Gastrell." +</P> + +<P> +"I hope so," said Mr. Imber. "It's a very good idea. But why do you +like Shakespeare so?" +</P> + +<P> +"He's so wonderful," said Hester. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, but so is Scott, say, and Dickens." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, but Shakespeare's so beautiful, too," said Hester. +</P> + +<P> +The children had gone alone to the church on the Monday morning. On +returning to the hotel they found Mrs. Avory ready for them, and all +started for the birthplace in Henley Street, where Shakespeare was +born, probably on April 23, 1564. This is now a museum with all kinds +of Shakespeare relics in it, profoundly interesting to Hester if not to +the others. The desk at which he sat in the Grammar School is there; +and his big chair from the Falcon Inn at Bidford; and many portraits; +and on one of the windows, scratched with a diamond, is the name of Sir +Walter Scott. The boys wanted to write their names, too, but it is no +longer allowed; although I fancy that if Sir Walter Scott could visit +Stratford again he would be permitted to break the rule. +</P> + +<P> +They stood in the bedroom where Shakespeare was born, and where his +father and mother probably died; and they looked into the garden where +he used to play; and Horace very mischievously pointed out the +fireplace in the kitchen where, as he told Hester, they cooked their +bacon. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory was then informed of the mean attacks on Shakespeare which +Horace had made in the church, and their complete refutation by the old +man, whose judgment she upheld. +</P> + +<P> +"Horace," she said, "oughtn't to be here at all. He ought to be at St. +Albans. We will look up the trains when we get back to the hotel." +</P> + +<P> +Horace was not quite certain whether this was serious or not. "Why St. +Albans?" he asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Because that is where your friend Bacon lived," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +The next place to visit was the Memorial, which is a very ugly building +by the river, where the Festival is held every spring. This is not very +interesting to children, being given up to books and pictures connected +with the stage; but close by are the steps leading to the boats, each +of which has a Shakespearian name, and Mrs. Avory allowed them to row +about for an hour before lunch. This they did, Robert and Mary and +Horace and Hester in the <I>Hermione</I>, and Janet and Gregory and Jack in +the <I>Rosalind.</I> +</P> + +<P> +After lunch, while they were waiting about in the hall looking at the +pictures, and not quite sure what to do, Mr. Imber of Philadelphia +approached them. "I wonder," he said, "if you would do me a favour. I +have scores of nephews and nieces, and also many friends, in America, +to whom I want to send picture postcards. Now," he continued, "listen +here. Here's seven shillings, one for each of you; and here's a +five-shilling piece. Now I am going to give you each a shilling to buy +picture post cards with, and I want you each to buy them separately—in +different shops if you like—and then bring them back to me, and I'll +give the five-shilling piece to the one who has what I think the best +collection. Now off you go." +</P> + +<P> +So they hurried off. Stratford-on-Avon, I may tell you, exists almost +entirely on the sale of picture postcards and Shakespeare relics, and +there was therefore no difficulty in finding seven shops, each with a +first-class assortment. +</P> + +<P> +In this way an hour went very pleasantly, and then the results were +laid before the old gentleman. Of course, there were many duplicates, +but each collection had four or five cards that the others had not. +After long consideration, Mr. Imber handed the five shillings to Mary. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory's was the only really original collection, for, taking +advantage of the circumstance that Mr. Imber had said nothing about the +postcards being strictly of Stratford-on-Avon, he had bought only what +pleased himself: all being what are called comic cards—dreadful +pictures of mothers-in-law, and twins, and surprised lovers. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Imber laughed, and told him to keep them. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said Gregory, selecting a peculiarly vulgar picture of a bull +tossing a red-nosed man into a cucumber frame, "I shall send this to +Miss Bingham." +</P> + +<P> +"Gregory!" exclaimed Janet; "you shall do nothing of the kind." +</P> + +<P> +"Why not?" Gregory asked. "She'll only laugh, and say: 'How coarse!'" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Janet, "we'll take them back to the shop, and change them +for nice ones." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no, not all," Gregory pleaded. "Collins would love this one of the +policeman with a cold pie being put into his hand by the cook behind +his back." +</P> + +<P> +"Very well," said Janet, "you may send her that, especially as we're +getting her some pretty ones." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Gregory, "and Eliza must have this one of the soldier +pushing the twins in the perambulator." +</P> + +<P> +"Very well," said Janet, "but no others." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said Gregory, "there's Runcie. I'm sure she'd love this one +of the curate being pulled both ways at once by two fat women. She's so +religious." +</P> + +<P> +After tea they walked to Shottery to see Anne Hathaway's cottage, +although not even Hester could be very keen about the poet's wife. +Hester, indeed, had it firmly in her head that she was not kind to him. +"Otherwise," she said, "he would have left her his best bed instead of +his second-best bed." +</P> + +<P> +None the less Hester was very glad to have Mr. Imber's present of +little china models of the cottage and the birthplace. To the others he +gave either these or coloured busts of Shakespeare; and to Gregory an +ivory pencil-case containing a tiny piece of glass into which you +peeped and saw twelve views of Stratford-on-Avon. +</P> + +<P> +After dinner they sat down to the serious task of writing on the +picture postcards which they had bought for themselves, while Gregory +earned sixpence by sticking stamps on Mr. Imber's vast supply. Jack +felt it his duty also to write to William: +</P> + +<BR> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR WILLIAM, +<BR><BR> +"Thanks for your very kind and informing letter. We are glad you are +having such a good time. This is a rotten caravan, and you are well out +of it. "Yours, +<BR><BR> +"J. R. +<BR><BR> +"P.S.—Don't fall off your clothes-horse too often." +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap13"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 13 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE YOUNG POLICEMAN +</H3> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory's train to London was an early one, and the Slowcoaches had +left Stratford behind them before ten, and were by eleven at Binton +Bridges, where the river again joins the road, and where they stopped +to discuss the question whether to go straight on through Bidford and +the Salfords, or to take the road to the south of the Avon through +Welsford and the Littletons. +</P> + +<P> +Robert was very firm for the Bidford way, and, of course, he won; and, +as it happened, it was very well that he did. +</P> + +<P> +It was a fine, bracing day, and they were all very vigorous after the +two days of rest in Stratford, and they therefore trudged gaily along +in the sun, not stopping again until just before Bidford, on the hill +where Shakespeare's crab-tree used to grow, under which he had slept so +long after one of his drinking contests. For it seems to have been his +habit to go now and then with other Stratford friends to neighbouring +villages to see whether they or the villagers could drink the most—a +custom that even Hester found it hard to defend. Indeed, she got no +farther than to say: "I am sure he was naturally troubled by thirst." +</P> + +<P> +The tree has gone, but another stands in its place, and by this the +children sat and ate a little lunch, and talked about the poet. Robert +repeated to them the old rhyme about the Warwickshire villages which +Shakespeare is said to have composed—possibly in this very field: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "Piping Pebworth, dancing Marston,<BR> + Haunted Hillborough, hungry Grafton,<BR> + Dodging Exhall, Papist Wixford,<BR> + Beggarly Broom and drunken Bidford."<BR> +</P> + +<P> +Bidford is not drunken now; it is only sleepy: a long steep street, +with, at the top, the church and a beautiful old house, now cottages, +once the Falcon Inn, where Shakespeare used to drink, and where the +chair came from that they had seen at the birthplace yesterday; and at +the foot the Swan Inn and the old bridge. +</P> + +<P> +Bidford is built very like a wateringplace—that is to say, it is all +on one side of the river. The water to-day looked very tempting, +especially as a great number of boats were lying on it waiting to be +hired; but Robert sternly ordered his party onwards. +</P> + +<P> +Has it ever occurred to you that in the life of every policeman there +is one day when he wears his majestic uniform in public for the first +time? It must, of course, be so. No matter how many times he may have +put it on at home privately, to get used to it, the day must at last +come when he has to walk forth into the streets, and in the eyes of +those who have known him ever since he was a boy, or even a baby, +changed from a man like themselves to an important and rather dreadful +guardian of the peace. If he is a simple fellow, the great day may +leave him very much as he was; but if he is at all given to conceit, it +may make him worse. +</P> + +<P> +Now it happened that this Tuesday on which the Slowcoaches were on +their way from Stratford to Evesham was the very day on which Benjamin +Roper was beginning his duties as a member of the Warwickshire +constabulary. His beat in the morning lay between Bidford and Salford +Priors, and he was standing beside the road, on the top of the little +hill called Marriage Hill—just before you cross the River Arrow and +come to Salford Priors station—at the very moment that Moses, after +painfully dragging the Slowcoach up the same eminence, had reached the +summit. +</P> + +<P> +At the door of the caravan were to be seen Mary, Hester, and Gregory, +whose turn it was to ride; and P.C. Roper stared in astonishment at +faces so unlike the swarthy, tanned children he was expecting. +</P> + +<P> +He stared so long indeed—everything being a little strange to him that +day—that Jack, who, with Horace, was walking just behind, politely but +with every intention of being severe, inquired: "Do you think you'll +know us next time?" +</P> + +<P> +P.C. Roper said nothing, but frowned at Jack with an expression so full +of dignity, reprimand, and suspicion that Jack could not help laughing. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I say," he said, "don't be cross. Mayn't we go about in a caravan +if we want to? No one else has objected." +</P> + +<P> +"No," Horace added, "the King said nothing as we came through London, +and the Mayor of Stratford asked us to tea." +</P> + +<P> +Kink laughed at this—much too loudly—and the young policeman realized +that he had been foolish. Instead, however, of laughing, too, he became +more important and angry, and suddenly he thought of a means of +retaliation. +</P> + +<P> +Pulling out a notebook and pencil, he said: "I want to see your license +for this caravan." He said this not because he really wanted to see it, +but because it suggested itself as a good demand and one which would +make the children realize that he was a man of authority not to be +trifled with. But when he saw the blank which fell on their faces, and +even on Kink's too, he knew that he had stumbled by chance on an +excellent weapon, and he resolved to make the most of it. +</P> + +<P> +"Come," he said, "the license. I'm waiting to see it." +</P> + +<P> +Janet and Robert, who had by this time come up, were told of the +difficulty. +</P> + +<P> +"License?" said Robert. "What license?" +</P> + +<P> +"All carriages must have licenses," said the policeman, "and all +caravans have to produce theirs when called for, because they're always +moving about." +</P> + +<P> +The children gathered round Kink to discuss it. Kink said that it was +all Greek to him. He supposed, of course, that caravans had to have +licenses, but he'd never heard of demands for them in the highroad. +"But do be civil to him, Master Robert," he implored. "You never get +any good out of cheeking the police." +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Robert to the constable, "this caravan was given to us. +The license for it was got, I feel sure, by the person who gave it to +us." +</P> + +<P> +"Who was that person?" P.C. Roper asked, with his pencil ready to write +down the name. +</P> + +<P> +Here was a poser. Who indeed? The children had discussed X. often +enough, but were no nearer to discovering him. +</P> + +<P> +"I don't know," Robert was forced to say. +</P> + +<P> +P.C. Roper smiled a deadly smile. "Oho!" he said. "You don't know who +gave you the caravan! Things are looking up. Caravans drop from the +sky, do they? A very thin story indeed. I'll trouble you to come with +me, all of you, and see my inspector." +</P> + +<P> +P.C. Roper was quite happy now. He had not only filled the impertinent +children with fear, but he had done a smart thing on his very first day +as constable. He drew himself up, and returned the notebook to his +pocket. +</P> + +<P> +"Your inspector?" Robert said. "Where does he live?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said P.C. Roper, "he lives at Bidford, but he's at Stratford +to-day, at the Police Court, and he won't be back till the evening." +</P> + +<P> +"We can't wait till evening," Robert said. "It would throw out all our +plans." +</P> + +<P> +"Plans!" exclaimed P.C. Roper. "Plans indeed! Aren't you +suspicious-looking persons in the possession of an unlicensed caravan, +and unable to give any reasonable account of how you got it? Your plans +can wait." +</P> + +<P> +"Please give us a little time to discuss it," Janet said, and they all +surrounded Kink once more. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course it's absurd," Jack said; "but what an awful pity you don't +know who X. is! That's what makes the trouble. It looks so silly, too." +</P> + +<P> +"Do you really think that caravans have to show licenses?" Janet asked +Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"I never thought about it," Kink said, "but it sounds reasonable in a +way. Gipsies, you know. If Master Campbell hadn't said that about the +King and the Mayor I shouldn't have laughed, and then the copper +wouldn't have lost his wool, and we should be all right." +</P> + +<P> +"Never mind about that," said Janet. "We can't bother about what is +done. The thing is, what we are to do. How funny of Mr. Lenox not to +have thought about the license!—he thought of everything else." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, and X. too," said Robert. "But it's just terrible to have to go +back and wait all day for the inspector. We are due at Evesham this +afternoon." +</P> + +<P> +"Couldn't we overpower him," Horace said, "and bind him, and leave him +in the ditch?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Hester, "or ask him to have a glass of milk, and drug it?" +</P> + +<P> +"Don't be absurd," said Robert. "This is serious. All right," he called +out to P.C. Roper, who was getting anxious, "we're just coming." +</P> + +<P> +Then Janet had a happy thought. "I say," she exclaimed, "where is that +envelope that Uncle Christopher gave us? He said we were to open it if +we got into a real mess. Well, now's the time." +</P> + +<P> +"It's in the safe," said Robert, and he dashed into the caravan and +brought it out. +</P> + +<P> +Janet opened it and read it slowly. Then she smiled a radiant smile, +and, advancing to the constable, handed him a paper. +</P> + +<P> +"Here is the license," she said; "you will find our name and address on +it. Now, perhaps, we may go on." +</P> + +<P> +P.C. Roper read the license very carefully, frowned, and handed it back. +</P> + +<P> +"It would save a lot of trouble," he said, "if you would produce such +things directly you were asked for them." +</P> + +<P> +"But we didn't know we'd got it," Janet said. +</P> + +<P> +P.C. Roper pressed his hand to his forehead. "I don't know where I am," +he muttered. +</P> + +<P> +"They've got a caravan, and they don't know who gave it to them; and +they've got envelopes, and they don't know what's in them. Does your +mother know you're out?" he added as a farewell shot. +</P> + +<P> +The Slowcoaches could not help it; they gave him three cheers, and then +three more for Uncle Christopher. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Janet, "that's all right, but it's lucky he did not see +Uncle Christopher's letter. Listen: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR CHILDREN, +<BR><BR> +"It has suddenly occurred to me that some ass of a policeman may want +to see your license, and I have therefore procured one for you. If you +get into any kind of trouble, be sure to give my name and address, and +telegraph for me. +<BR><BR> +"Your affectionate Uncle,<BR> + CHRIS.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"It would have been better," Kink said, "if your uncle had handed you +the license right away—not made a mystery of it." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said Hester. +</P> + +<P> +As it happened, they were destined not to reach Evesham that day, for +at Abbots Salford Moses cast a shoe, and that meant the blacksmith and +delay. When the accident was discovered, and the children were +surrounding Moses and helping Kink in his examination of the hoof, a +farmer who was walking by stopped and joined them. He asked the +trouble, and offered them his advice. +</P> + +<P> +"You put your caravan in my yard there," he said, pointing to a +beautiful gateway just ahead, "and you make yourselves comfortable +there while the horse is being shod. I'll show you the house if you +like," he added; "it's very old, and haunted too, and there's a grand +boatingplace at the weir just across the meadows. Don't worry about the +horse or anything. If you go to bed early and get up early, it will +come to the same thing as if you had gone right on." +</P> + +<P> +Everyone except Robert, who liked to see his time-tables obeyed, and +perhaps Gregory, who had been deprived for some days of his office of +asking leave for a camping-ground, and was now balked again, was glad +of the mischance that brought camp so early, and Hester was wild with +pleasure, for Salford Hall is an old mansion of grey stone, built three +hundred years ago, and now mysterious and, except for a few rooms, +desolate. It has also an old garden and a fish-pond, and a little Roman +Catholic chapel whose altar-candles have been alight for centuries. +</P> + +<P> +The farmer was very kind. He gave the children leave to go anywhere and +everywhere, but they must not, he said, run or jump, because the floors +were not strong enough. He led them from room to room, to the +dancing-gallery in the roof. +</P> + +<P> +There was a very old bagatelle-table in one room, all moth-eaten, and a +few old pictures still on the walls—a knight and his lady with +Elizabethan ruffs, and a portrait of a greyhound. From a top window the +farmer showed them Evesham's bell-tower. +</P> + +<P> +But the most exciting moment was when each of them in turn was allowed +to hide in the priest's hiding-hole. This was a very ingenious cupboard +behind a row of shelves intended to have books or china on them, which +swung back when you loosened a catch. Hester crouched here and shut her +eyes, and firmly believed that the Protestants were after her. +</P> + +<P> +In her next letter she implored her mother to take the Hall, and live +there in the summer. "I am sure," she wrote, "it would be very cheap, +because it is so shabby and is crumbling away in many places. I would +gladly live in the priest's hiding-hole always. Please think about it +seriously." +</P> + +<P> +Afterwards the farmer showed them the way down to the weir, over the +railway, and advised them to have the caravan taken down there, and +sleep there that night near the rushing water. +</P> + +<P> +"You couldn't have done it two months ago," he said. +</P> + +<P> +"Why not?" Robert asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Guess why," said the farmer. +</P> + +<P> +And will you believe it, none of them could guess. +</P> + +<P> +"Because it was flooded," said the farmer. "In winter it's often just a +great lake, from the railway at the foot of our garden right to the +Marlcliff Hills." +</P> + +<P> +And so Moses (with a beautiful new shoe) was put into the shafts again, +and they went gently over the soft green meadows to the weir, and there +they had their supper, and explored the mill and the shaggy wood +overhanging it, and rowed a little in a very safe boat, and stood on +the little bridges, and watched the rushing water, and then walked +slowly beside the still stream higher up as the light began to fade, +and surprised the water-rats feeding or gossiping on the banks—none of +which things could they have done had Moses had the poor sense to +retain his near fore-shoe. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap14"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 14 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE LITTLE OLD LADY +</H3> + +<P> +They left the weir very early the next morning, after a breakfast from +the cold ham which Mrs. Avory had bought them at Stratford. On their +way through the village they stopped at Salford Hall, because Hester +and Gregory had had an argument as to whether or not it was possible to +hear the breathing of the person in the hiding-hole. The farmer allowed +them to go upstairs and try, and, as it happened, Hester was right, and +you could hear it, if you had patience. Gregory came out again as +purple as a plum through holding it in so long. +</P> + +<P> +Then they said good-bye to the farmer and strode on through Harrington +and Norton, and a little beyond this Robert took those that cared about +it to see the obelisk on the site of the Battle of Evesham, at which +Simon de Montfort was killed in 1265. And so they came through the +orchards of plum-trees, on which the fruit was now forming, to Evesham +itself. +</P> + +<P> +It was while they were walking through Evesham, beside or behind the +Slowcoach, in the middle of the road, that Janet felt a hand on her +arm, and, looking round, perceived a very small and very neat and very +anxious little servant maid. +</P> + +<P> +"Please," she said, "Miss Redstone, my mistress says, will you all step +into her house and partake of refreshment, and do her a very great +favour?" +</P> + +<P> +Janet could hardly believe her ears. +</P> + +<P> +"All of us!" she exclaimed. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said the little servant, "all, please." +</P> + +<P> +Janet thought very hard for a moment or two. Who was this Miss +Redstone? What would Mrs. Avory do under the same circumstances? she +was asking herself. "Which house?" she inquired at last. +</P> + +<P> +"That one," said the little anxious servant, pointing to the neatest +and brightest little house you ever saw, with dazzling steps and a +shining knocker, and a poor little pathetic face peering hopefully over +the blind. +</P> + +<P> +The pathetic little face settled it. "All right," Janet said at once, +and, calling the others together and telling Kink to wait for them +outside the town, she led them in. +</P> + +<P> +They were shown into a tiny and spotless parlour, with woolwork +footstools, where after a moment or so they were joined by Miss +Redstone, the little old lady whom Janet had seen at the window, but +whose face was now smiling and contented. +</P> + +<P> +"You must think me very strange, my dears," she said, "but I will +explain. I am Godfrey Fairfax." +</P> + +<P> +A dreadful silence fell on the room. The children looked at each other +shamefacedly, and almost in fear, for they thought the little old lady +must be mad. +</P> + +<P> +As for her, she again looked the picture of woe. "O dear," she said, +"is it possible that none of you have ever even heard of me! Surely one +of my stories must have found its way to your house?" +</P> + +<P> +"Do you write stories?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, I have written lots, but I'm afraid they don't sell as they ought +to. Of course, Godfrey Fairfax is not my real name; it is just the name +I take as a writer, because people prefer that books should be written +by a man rather than by a woman. I am really Miss Redstone. Why I +called you in was to ask if you would be so very kind as to sit down +and have some cake and milk while I read you my last story—quite a +short one—and you can tell me what you think of it. There are so few +children that I know here, and it makes such a difference to get some +real criticism. Do you mind?" +</P> + +<P> +They all said they didn't mind at all, and after the cake and milk had +been brought in by the little servant, Godfrey Fairfax cleared her +throat and began. +</P> + +<P> +"It is a story," she said, "of Roundheads and Cavaliers—a very +suitable story to write here, so close to the battlefields of +Tewkesbury and Marston Moor. It is called 'Barbara's Fugitive.' Now +listen, my dears." +</P> + +<BR> + +<H4> +BARBARA'S FUGITIVE +</H4> + +<P> +On a bright June morning, early in the Protectorate, Colonel Myddelton, +followed by a groom, rode through the gates of the old Hall and turned +his horse's head towards London. At the bend in the road, halfway up +Sheringham Hill, he stopped a moment and waved his hand in the +direction of the house. A white handkerchief fluttered at an upper +window in reply. +</P> + +<P> +"My poor lonely Barbara!" said the Colonel, smiling tenderly as he +passed again out of sight of his daughter. +</P> + +<P> +"Dear father!" said Barbara, as the Colonel disappeared from view. She +did not, however, at once leave the window, but remained leaning out, +with the warm touch of the sun on her head, drinking in the morning +sounds. +</P> + +<P> +The village, half a mile distant, was just visible to Barbara through +the trees—red-roofed, compact, the cottages gathering about the church +like chickens round the mother hen. On a summer day like this anyone +listening at the Hall could hear the busy noises, the hum of this +little hive of humanity, with perfect clearness; the beat of the hammer +on the anvil in Matthew Hale's smithy, the "Gee, whoa!" of the carter +on the distant road, the scrunching of the wagon-wheels, the crowing +cocks, and now and then the shouts of boys and the laughter of +children. These audible tokens of active life were a comfort to +Barbara. A moment before, on parting with her father, she was aware of +a new and disturbing loneliness, but now she felt no longer with the +same melancholy that she was solitary, apart from her fellows. +</P> + +<P> +It was the time when the country was divided between the followers of +the Throne and the followers of Cromwell; the time when sour visages, +who were for the moment in the places of authority, glowered beneath +black hats, and the village games were forbidden; the time when +Royalist gentlemen dropped a crumb into their wineglasses after dinner, +and, looking meaningly at each other, tossed off the red liquor, saying +fervently as they did so, "God send this CRUMB WELL down." But actual +fighting was over, and the country on the surface peaceable again, +although a word often was sufficient to draw forth steel among the high +folks or set an inn full of villagers to fisticuffs. There was not a +Royalist in the country but awaited the moment when he could strike +another blow to avenge his dead master and reinstate his young Prince. +Among these loyal gentlemen Colonel Myddelton was not the least. +</P> + +<P> +Colonel Myddelton was a widower, and Barbara, young though she was, had +long acted as the mistress of the household. Yet, in spite of her good +sense and caution, Barbara had been the obstacle to the Colonel's +departure. She was, he considered, unfit to be left alone with no more +stalwart companions than old Digger, the maids, and the children; but +her repeated assurances that she felt no foreboding at last conquered, +and that morning, as we have seen, he had ridden off. +</P> + +<P> +"You know, father," she had told him again and again, "Philip is close +at hand, and truly I can see no danger. Was not I alone for days and +nights together when you were with the King and the Prince?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well, well," the Colonel had responded at last; "but I shall speak a +word to Matthew as I pass the forge to-day, and he will keep his eye on +the place." Matthew Hale, the blacksmith, had served under Colonel +Myddelton in more than one campaign, and he rang as true as his own +anvil. +</P> + +<P> +Thus it was that Barbara was left alone in the great house, with none +to bear her company but Jack, who was but twelve, and Marjorie, who was +but eight, and little Alys, and old Digger, the odd man, and the maids. +There were also, it is true, stablemen and gardeners, but they lived in +the village. +</P> + +<P> +The next of age to Barbara was Philip (Philip Sidney Myddelton in full, +so named after that sweet and noble gentleman and soldier who fell at +Zutphen). Philip was sixteen, and at this time was still at his lessons +with Mr. Fullarton, of Framshott, a village eight miles distant. Mr. +Fullarton was a ripe scholar who kept a house wherein some score of +boys whose parents had no strong liking for the great grammar schools +were received and fitted with enough learning to take them into Oxford +or Cambridge. The boys ranged in age from ten to seventeen, and at this +time Philip was their leader. None could shoot with a crossbow as +skillfully as he (that very spring he had killed twenty-three +water-rats, and you know how wary they are); none was so fearless a +rider; none more expert at flying the hawk or training hounds. The +boys' worthy instructor received a liberal sum in payment for his +services, and his house was thus made more of a home than a mere +school. Each boy who wanted it was permitted to keep his own horse and +dog, and after lessons were over their liberty was little encroached +upon, provided that they observed the rules of the house. +</P> + +<P> +The Reverend Jeremy Fullarton was Royalist to the marrow, and only +Royalists entrusted their sons to his keeping; hence the house was a +home of Cavalier sentiment. The older boys had even constituted +themselves into a little corps, and all games had given way before the +joys of drilling and military tactics. Here again Philip led, although +his sworn allies, Hugh Lorimer and Vernon Hutchinson (a nephew of the +great Colonel Hutchinson, whose memoirs were written by his wife Lucy) +and Rupert Ommaney, shared the command. Not often do you find a bond +uniting as many as four schoolboys in devoted friendship, but such was +the case with this gallant quartet, Philip and Hugh, Rupert and Vernon. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"IS IT INTERESTING?" THE LITTLE OLD LADY ASKED EARNESTLY. +</P> + +<P> +"VERY," SAID JANET. +</P> + +<P> +"I LIKE BARBARA," SAID HESTER. +</P> + +<P> +"I LIKE PHILIP," SAID GREGORY. +</P> + +<P> +GODFREY FAIRFAX WAS ABOUT TO BEGIN AGAIN, WHEN HORACE INTERRUPTED. +</P> + +<P> +"EXCUSE ME," HE SAID. "BUT I'VE BEEN THINKING. DIDN'T YOU WRITE 'FOR +THE GOOD CAUSE'?" +</P> + +<P> +"YES," SHE SAID. +</P> + +<P> +"WHY," SAID HORACE, "THAT'S MY FAVOURITE BOOK. YOU REMEMBER THAT, JACK? +THE WARS OF THE ROSES AND THE YORKIST FAMILY? YOU MUST REMEMBER WHERE +THE SPY—GILES FEATHERHEAD—IS CAUGHT IN THE BUTTERY, AND HOW THEY DUCK +HIM?" +</P> + +<P> +"OF COURSE I DO," SAID JACK. "IT'S PERFECTLY RIPPING." +</P> + +<P> +GODFREY FAIRFAX WAS SO PLEASED TO HEAR THIS THAT HER VOICE FOR A MOMENT +OR TWO WAS QUITE HUSKY. THEN SHE RESUMED. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +In the evening Matthew Hale appeared bearing a basket of tools, and +insisted upon testing all locks and bolts, and Barbara and he explored +the house together, making all safe with the exception of a window in +the library. This room was on the ground-floor, easily accessible, and, +try as he would, there was one window which the blacksmith could not +secure. The good fellow was for sleeping on the floor all night by way +of guard, but Barbara would not hear of it, and, in the end, Bevis, the +mastiff, the great dog that had followed Colonel Myddelton into camp in +the late war, was chained outside the window. Satisfied with this +arrangement, Matthew pulled his forelock and said good night, and +Barbara prepared for bed. +</P> + +<P> +Folks kept better hours in those days than we now do. First she peeped +in at the sleeping children. Then she talked long and earnestly with +the cook concerning the morrow's programme, and at nine o'clock she +climbed to her room. +</P> + +<P> +Barbara, however, could not sleep; so, after an hour or two had passed, +she rose, lit a candle, threw on a wrap, and descended the broad +staircase, intent upon a queer and enthralling Spanish book—the story +of a mad knight and his comic, matter-of-fact attendant, which was a +favourite of her father's. +</P> + +<P> +The book was wont to stand in a corner of the library close to his hand +as he sat writing by the window, and, opening the door, Barbara crossed +the floor with her hand outstretched to take it. So familiar was she +with the mad knight's position on the shelves that she carried no light. +</P> + +<P> +Her hand was within a yard of the sheepskin cover when she leaped back +with frozen blood, for there, a foot from her, in her father's chair, +was the figure of a man. Instantly she remembered the open window. A +breath from the roses floated in and fanned her face; until her dying +day Barbara had but to be conscious of the scent of roses to see again +that darkened room, to feel again that tightening of the heart. She +could neither scream nor move. +</P> + +<P> +The tension was snapped by the man himself, who suddenly awoke and +stretched his arms, and, in doing so, smote Barbara on the shoulder. He +sprang to his feet with a cry of astonishment and apology, and at that +moment she was herself again. +</P> + +<P> +"A thousand pardons," he said, bowing low before her. +</P> + +<P> +"Who—who are you?" Barbara found words to ask. "And what is your +business here? It is no part of a gentleman's behaviour to enter houses +by the window." +</P> + +<P> +"Nay," said the man, and Barbara noted that his speech was of one +gently born—"nay, it is truly no gentleman's conduct, but in these +days, when Kings are laid low at the hands of traitors"—and his voice +had a bitter ring—"and rebels sit in high places, a gentleman must +perforce descend to trickery and meanness now and then." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara repeated her question. "But tell me who you are, and what you +want? There is a gate to the place; there are servants to open it. Why +did you steal upon us thus? And Bevis?" she added, as a sudden +misgiving seized her, "he was chained by the window. Have you killed +him? Oh, say you have not hurt Bevis?" +</P> + +<P> +"Nay, I could not hurt an old friend," said the stranger. "Bevis and I +are old friends. He remembered me at once." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara's fear diminished somewhat at these words. "Old friends!" she +exclaimed, half reassured. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said the stranger, "we were together in the west. Colonel +Mvddelton, whom I have striven hither to talk with, and I went through +a campaign together; a futile campaign, I fear, with more of pursuit +than pursuing, but for a high cause. I'faith, it seems my lot to be +pursued. And you, fair lady (for, dark though it is, I know you are +fair), are you Colonel Myddelton's daughter, the mistress Barbara, of +whom he has told me?" +</P> + +<P> +"I am Colonel Myddelton's daughter," said Barbara. "But you, sir?" +</P> + +<P> +"Right, right," the stranger replied, more gaily; "you ply me hard, but +my name stays secret, none the less. Yet this ring may perhaps convince +you I am no common housebreaker. See, it was the gift of your father, +and a passport, so he said, to Myddelton Hall by day or night." And he +stretched forth a ring, which Barbara immediately recognized as an old +signet of her father's which suddenly he had ceased to wear, he said +not why. She was partially satisfied. "And Bevis," added the +stranger—"take it, will you not, dear lady, as a good omen that Bevis +let me pass almost unchallenged? But your father," he went on—"is he +ill, or away? or will you lead me to him? Had I not fallen asleep, I +was about to seek his room. As for entering by the gate, you must know, +young mistress, the danger now run by friends of the late King." +</P> + +<P> +"Ah, yes," said Barbara, with a sigh. "My father," she added, "rode +this morning to London, where he will be a week yet; but I can tell you +where he is lodged. Will you not follow him?" +</P> + +<P> +"London!" the young man repeated, in disappointed tones; "what does he +there? London is no place for a true man." +</P> + +<P> +"He has ridden thither," said Barbara, "on matters touching his +property, which the rebels would confiscate." +</P> + +<P> +"Rebels!" cried the stranger excitedly. "Ha! a good word in your mouth, +young mistress. I like to hear you say that thus roundly. Zounds!" he +added; "it is ill news that your father is away, for I have but a few +hours in this country, and I must even return without accomplishing my +mission. To London I dare not adventure. But, mistress, will you not +bring a light, that we may see if we still doubt each other; and then +we must talk of a plan of safety." +</P> + +<P> +"Stay where you are," said Barbara, "and I will fetch a candle." +</P> + +<P> +During her absence the stranger had not moved. As she entered he +stepped forward and took the light from her, holding it high and +scrutinizing her face narrowly. +</P> + +<P> +"Ah!" he exclaimed at last, with a sigh; "good as gold! Would that +other lands could breed such grace! It is ill to be banished from one's +own countrywomen." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara blushed and turned away. +</P> + +<P> +The young man, who was soberly clad, had dark, almost black hair, and +dark eyes. His mouth was perhaps too loose, but he was prepossessing. A +certain melancholy, an air of bafflement, seemed to overshadow him. +Barbara's sympathy was his at that moment, and he knew it. +</P> + +<P> +"There is a hiding-place in the house," he said, after a pause; "your +father has told me of it." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara started; but at these words, her last suspicion vanished. +"There is," she replied simply. +</P> + +<P> +"Then will you lodge me there?" the stranger answered. "The gravest +issues depend upon the success with which my visit here is kept secret. +So far, I believe I have eluded suspicion and pursuit, but these +Roundheads are cunning as jackals. And, dear preserver, might I crave +some food and drink?" +</P> + +<P> +"Alas!" exclaimed Barbara, "I have delayed hospitality too long. But, +you see," she added, smiling, "such visitors are rare at Myddelton +Hall. Our gates fly wide to welcome my father's friends when we know of +their approach, I assure you, sir." +</P> + +<P> +The stranger bowed, and, smiling in reply, lost for the moment his air +of melancholy. +</P> + +<P> +"Your hiding-place is close at hand," she said, and looked again at the +ring. +</P> + +<P> +It was certainly her father's; she had often seen it on his hand. And +Bevis, too! No, there could be no longer any doubt as to the +stranger's genuineness. At least, if there were, she banished it +forthwith, for, moving swiftly to the door, she locked it, and then, +crossing the room to the fireplace, held up the light and revealed a +portrait of an elderly man in Elizabethan costume. +</P> + +<P> +"My great-grandfather," she said, "with whom, as I will show you, +liberties have been taken." +</P> + +<P> +So saying, she climbed on a chair, and, reaching upward, pressed her +finger against the portrait's right eye. As she did so, a spring was +set in motion, and the picture slid upwards, taking the top line of the +heavy oak frame with it, and leaving the remaining three sides in their +place, disclosing a cavity in the wall. +</P> + +<P> +"Climb in there," Barbara said, handing the candle to the stranger, +"and turn sharp to the right, and then to the left, and you will come +to an iron door, which rises and falls like a portcullis. The handle is +of no use, but on the ceiling you will see the motto, <I>'Nil +desperandum,'</I> which you must take as counsel offered to yourself. +Press the space in the centre of the D, and the door will open." +</P> + +<P> +The stranger did so. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," Barbara called to him, "wait a little, and I will bring you +food." +</P> + +<P> +She replaced the picture, and sought the kitchen, soon returning with +the remains of a pasty and a flask of Rhenish, which, after again +touching the spring, she handed up to her guest. He took them, and +disappeared into the passage, whither, with the assistance of a chair +and a scramble, Barbara followed him. +</P> + +<P> +The room was a minute but very complete retreat. A little bed stood in +the corner, and by its side a tiny table and chair, on which were +writing materials. +</P> + +<P> +"To-morrow, sir," said Barbara, "I will come and inquire after you. You +want sleep now. I wish you good rest and good fortune." And, so saying, +she left him. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +GODFREY FAIRFAX PAUSED AGAIN. "WELL," SHE SAID, "DO YOU STILL LIKE IT?" +</P> + +<P> +"VERY MUCH," SAID JANET. +</P> + +<P> +"IT'S VERY EXCITING," SAID MARY. +</P> + +<P> +"I LIKE THE HIDING-PLACE," SAID GREGORY. +</P> + +<P> +"WE'VE JUST SEEN ONE AT SALFORD HALL—ONLY THAT WAS FOR PRIESTS—INSIDE +A CHINA CUPBOARD. I GOT IN IT. THE PICTURE'S MUCH BETTER." +</P> + +<P> +"DO YOU LIKE IT?" MISS REDSTONE SAID TO ROBERT. +</P> + +<P> +"PRETTY WELL," HE ANSWERED; AND THEY ALL LAUGHED. +</P> + +<P> +"DON'T LAUGH," SAID MISS REDSTONE; "THAT'S JUST THE KIND OF REMARK I +WANT. NOW TAKE SOME MORE CAKE, ALL OF YOU, AND I WILL GO ON." +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Barbara awoke almost with the birds, after two or three hours of fitful +sleep, and with a rush came the memory of last night's events. Her +first thought was for the quick and safe departure of the stranger, and +weariness of head told her it was time to seek advice. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, if father were here!" was the burden of her thoughts. But he was +far away, and the immediate question was whom to ask for help. She +ticked off the neighbouring gentlemen, and decided against them one by +one. Old Digger was useless. Matthew Hale was sound, but stupid. +Everything pointed to her brother Philip. +</P> + +<P> +No sooner had she made up her mind than Barbara turned to her +writing-table and penned a laborious letter to the Rev. Jeremy. Poor +Barbara! Spelling was not her strongest point, nor, indeed, did anyone +then mind whether spelling was good or bad. She wrote as follows: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEARE AND REVEREND SIR, +<BR><BR> +"My father has riden to London and I would faine not be without manlie +companie in so grate an house (olde Digger being worthie and trustie +but a lyttel deaf and stiffe). Therefor I pray you let me have my +brother Philip and his friends for this daye that I may be more at mine +ease. +<BR><BR> +"Your servant, + BARBARA MYDDELTON.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Having sanded and folded the paper Barbara awakened Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"Jack!" she called, shaking him in his bed. "Jack, I have an errand for +you. Jump up quickly and dress, and then saddle Roger, and I will get +you some food, and then you must ride at a gallop to Framshott to Mr. +Fullarton's, and he will send back Philip with you, and Hugh and Vernon +and Rupert." +</P> + +<P> +Having seen the little fellow off, Barbara set the servants to work on +a business that would keep them remote from the library, and then +visited her guest. She first knocked three times on the chimney—a sign +that had been agreed on. After a minute had passed he replied, and, +having made certain that no one could enter or see into the library, +Barbara removed the picture and waited. +</P> + +<P> +The young man immediately sprang into the room. +</P> + +<P> +"Good morrow, sir," said Barbara simply, with a curtsey. +</P> + +<P> +"Good morrow, fair hostess and preserving angel," said the young man, +with a bow. +</P> + +<P> +"We must come to business at once," said Barbara, and forthwith she +told him of her message to her brother. "Philip is very young," she +added, "but true as steel, and his head is older than his years." +</P> + +<P> +"Good," said the stranger, and he unfolded his plans. That night he +must embark for France. He was expected by the master of the +<I>Antelope,</I> a schooner lying all ready to weigh anchor at Portallan, +the harbour twelve miles distant. She would sail by the night tide, +with or without him. It was understood that, if he were not there, evil +had befallen him. +</P> + +<P> +"Everything depends," he explained, "on my departure to-night. The +cause hangs upon it. A blight on my evil luck!" he cried. "Were Colonel +Myddelton at home, I should not be fleeing from my own country +empty-handed. I shall be writing to him most of this day, but a spoken +word is worth a volume of pen stuff." +</P> + +<P> +It was arranged at length that as soon as the dusk came three of the +boys, with the stranger wearing the clothes of the fourth, should ride +out, ostensibly on the return to the schoolhouse. +</P> + +<P> +Thus, no suspicion would be aroused, and, once in the road, it would be +simple to turn the horses' heads towards the sea and gain the harbour. +</P> + +<P> +That settled, Barbara gave breakfast to her guest, and he returned to +his hidingplace for the rest of the weary day with a store of candles +and an armful of books and paper. +</P> + +<P> +Two hours later the boys rode in, all excitement, and Barbara watched +them attack the loaded breakfast-table. Philip's friends were, of +course, all devoted to this grave, sweet girl, although not bitter +rivals. +</P> + +<P> +"Philip dear," said Barbara swiftly, when, after breakfast, she had +drawn her brother into her room and locked the door "there is in the +castle at this moment a messenger from the Prince, who has come to see +our father on grave business. You can guess what such business would +be. He dare not follow him to London, and must leave to-night for the +nearest seaport, his errand all unperformed. I sent for you and your +friends because the gentleman is our guest, and must be treated with +courtesy and care. He is unattended, and the countryside is alive with +traitors. You and your friends will protect him to-night, will you not?" +</P> + +<P> +"To the death," said Philip. +</P> + +<P> +"Ah, I knew!" said his sister proudly. +</P> + +<P> +"Barbara," exclaimed Philip, "it was fine of you to send for us!" And +he hugged her mightily. "But where is the gentleman?" +</P> + +<P> +"In hiding," she answered; "but mind, not a word of this to the others. +Tell them enough to stop questions. Not a soul knows he is here save +you and me. Later they must know, for one of you will have to lend him +clothes. Only three of you can ride as his guard." +</P> + +<P> +"But, Barbara," cried Philip in alarm, "it is not I who will stay +behind? It could not be. I am his host. And what build of man is he, +Barbara? Say he is not my size." +</P> + +<P> +"No, Phil dear; he is taller by a hand's breadth." +</P> + +<P> +"Ah," sighed Philip, with intense relief, "then it must be Rupert! Poor +Rupert!" +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said Barbara, "forget all about it, and have a good holiday with +the boys. The evening is distant yet." +</P> + +<P> +"I wish it were here!" Phil exclaimed fervently as he ran off. +</P> + +<P> +Philip at once sought out Rupert, and, slipping his hand into his arm, +led him away from the others. He wanted to break the news gently. +</P> + +<P> +"I say, Rupert," he said, "you remember that crossbow of mine you +wanted so much?" +</P> + +<P> +Rupert remembered. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, it is yours," said Philip. "And I want you to ride Tiger oftener +than you do." (Tiger was Philip's most prized horse.) +</P> + +<P> +Rupert was beginning to be mystified, but he could see that all this +was but the preamble to something more important. +</P> + +<P> +"And, Rupert," Philip continued, "you know how keen we all are to smash +those Roundheads, don't you?" +</P> + +<P> +Rupert knew. +</P> + +<P> +"But it isn't always possible, you understand, for everyone to fight +and be in the front, is it? Some have to do quieter work where they are +not seen, haven't they?" +</P> + +<P> +Rupert agreed, a little impatiently. "But Phil," he added, "what does +all this mean? What do you want me to do?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Philip, "I can't tell you everything; but to-night it may +be necessary for some of us to ride to Portallan, and one to stay +behind, and I thought I would try to make it easier for you to be the +one to stay behind, that's all. It must be you, I'm afraid, poor old +fellow!" +</P> + +<P> +The reader paused again. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"I LIKE THAT BIT ABOUT SPELLING," SAID JACK. +</P> + +<P> +"I THINK BARBARA AND PHILIP WERE VERY LUCKY," SAID ROBERT. "THERE'S NO +FUN LIKE THAT NOW. WY IS ALL THE FUN IN THE PAST?" +</P> + +<P> +"I THINK IT'S FUN TO GO FOR A CARAVAN-TOUR," SAID MISS REDSTONE; "AND +THAT'S IN THE PRESENT." +</P> + +<P> +"OH, YES," SAID ROBERT, "THAT'S FUN, NO DOUBT; BUT IT DOESN'T COMPARE +WITH FIGHTING AGAINST ROUNDHEADS." +</P> + +<P> +"I THINK BARBARA WAS MOST HORRIBLY LUCKY," SAID HESTER, "BECAUSE, OF +COURSE, THE STRANGER WAS—" +</P> + +<P> +"HUSH!" SAID THE AUTHOR; AND SHE BEGAN TO READ ONCE MORE. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +The day wore on slowly. Barbara did her best to go through the +household duties naturally, but the tension was severe. She was +perpetually conscious of a fear that, after all, in spite of his +confidence in his skill, the stranger might have been tracked and +pursued. +</P> + +<P> +She had, indeed, in the peace of the afternoon, but just dismissed the +suspicion, when the white face of Philip appearing suddenly at the door +of the library, where she was sitting, brought back all her tremors. +</P> + +<P> +"Roundheads!" he gasped. +</P> + +<P> +Her heart stood still. "Oh, if father were here!" was all she could +murmur moaningly, as the clatter of hoofs rung out in the courtyard. +</P> + +<P> +A minute later old Digger tottered in shaking like a reed, followed by +an officer and three soldiers. Barbara rose to meet them, biting her +lips to repress her emotion "What is it?" she inquired coldly. +</P> + +<P> +"Guard the doors and the windows! said the Captain to his men, ignoring +her. He looked round the room, and then condescended to reply. +</P> + +<P> +"We are seeking a rebel," he said. "He has been traced to this +neighbourhood, and it would be natural for him to seek hospitality +here. The Myddeltons are fond of such dirt." +</P> + +<P> +"This roof shelters no rebels," said Barbara simply. +</P> + +<P> +"Colonel Myddelton, this doddering old fool tells me," said the +Captain, indicating Digger, "is away." +</P> + +<P> +"Clearly," said Barbara, "or your language would be more guarded." +</P> + +<P> +"And no one has come seeking refuge?" the Captain pursued, adding, to +Barbara's intense relief: "But asking questions is sheer waste of +breath. I have no time to talk. We must search the house." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara sank into her chair again. Surely they must hear the beating of +her heart, she thought. Oh, anything, anything to appear calm! The risk +was double—first, that they might themselves discover the secret +place; secondly, that in tapping the walls, as they were even now +doing, they might give her signal to the fugitive, and thus cause him +to betray himself. She buried her face in her embroidery, but was aware +that the Captain's eyes were on her. The soldiers were passing round +the room slowly, thoroughly. In the stress of her perturbation Barbara +rose and moved to the door, controlling her agitation with a tremendous +effort. +</P> + +<P> +"Follow the lady," said the Captain to one of the soldiers. "Don't lose +sight of her for a moment." ("The minx knows something," he muttered in +his moustache.) +</P> + +<P> +"You brute!" cried Philip, drawing his sword. "Do you dare to order my +sister to be dogged? Come on." And he made a lunge at the Roundhead. +</P> + +<P> +"Steady!" said the Captain, parrying the thrust—"steady, young fellow!" +</P> + +<P> +Barbara, catching at the door, screamed and swooned. +</P> + +<P> +Philip thrust at him again. +</P> + +<P> +"Be still," muttered the Captain; "we must have no bloodshed here." And +he twitched the weapon from the boy's hand, adding: "Very well, I +withdraw the order. Carry your sister to her room, and my soldier shall +merely stand sentinel at her door. Another word, you puppy, and I'll +have you in irons!" +</P> + +<P> +With an effort Philip obeyed, remembering the duty the night held for +him; and he and Digger together carried Barbara to her room, followed +by the soldier, who took up his stand at the door. +</P> + +<P> +On resuming their search, the soldiers did no more than thrust their +pikes up the chimney, and in a few minutes proceeded to the other rooms. +</P> + +<P> +An hour later the Captain sent for Philip, who sauntered into his +presence whistling a country dance. +</P> + +<P> +"I am going at once," said the Captain. +</P> + +<P> +Philip had it in his mind to press him ironically to stay, with a word +of regret that his visit was so short; but he stifled the temptation, +and simply nodded. +</P> + +<P> +"But I am not in the least satisfied," the Captain continued, "and I +mean to leave three soldiers behind to guard the entries and your +sister's room. No one leaves the Hall to-night." +</P> + +<P> +Philip's face fell. "But I must," he said. "I am at school at +Framshott, and we, my companions and I, must ride back to-night." +</P> + +<P> +"Your companions!" said the Captain. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Philip; "I will call them." And he shouted from the window +to the boys playing bowls in the garden. +</P> + +<P> +They came up, and were passed before the scrutinizing eyes of the +Roundhead. +</P> + +<P> +"Royalist whelps!" he muttered. "Very well," he said at length, "you +may go. But mind, no one else leaves the house." +</P> + +<P> +Then, giving careful instructions to the three men left in charge, he +rode off with the others. +</P> + +<P> +News spreads rapidly in villages at all times, and it was, therefore, +not surprising that Matthew Hale should hear that there were Roundheads +at Myddelton Hall very soon after they had clattered into the courtyard. +</P> + +<P> +"Roundheads at the Hall, are there?" he said. "Then I reckon I'll join +them. It won't be the first time I've met a Roundhead—no, nor smashed +one, either." So saying, he laid aside his hammer, and, taking instead +a bar of iron, he left his boy in charge of the smithy, and set out for +the Hall. +</P> + +<P> +Matthew reached the Hall a few minutes after the Captain and two of the +Roundheads had ridden off. The first person he saw was Philip, who, +with the three boys and little Jack, were plotting together in the +shrubbery. +</P> + +<P> +"Hullo, Matt!" cried Philip; "come here. We want you." +</P> + +<P> +Matthew turned aside from the carriageway, and joined the little group. +They all looked profoundly grave and important. +</P> + +<P> +"What is it, young master?" said the blacksmith. "And where's Mistress +Barbara? Don't say she's ill." +</P> + +<P> +Then Philip told him the story, omitting all reference to the refugee, +whose existence was a secret to the other boys, from the arrival of the +Captain to his departure, ending: +</P> + +<P> +"And at this very moment, Matt, there are three Roundhead soldiers on +guard in the Hall—two at the doors, and one standing—can you believe +it?—standing at my sister's door. I've fought him once," Philip +continued, "but he's too strong, and now the others are keeping us out +of the house, and we've charged them several times, but without doing +any good, and there are a thousand reasons why we shouldn't any of us +be hurt." +</P> + +<P> +"But where are the grooms and gardeners?" Matthew asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, they all disappeared," said Philip. "I suppose they feared an +inquiry might be dangerous. It's bad for the health and reputation to +fight a Roundhead." +</P> + +<P> +Matthew laughed grimly. "It's bad for the Roundhead's health if he runs +against this," he said, raising the iron bar. +</P> + +<P> +At this moment Jack interrupted. "See, Phil," he cried, "Barbara's +waving to you at the window." +</P> + +<P> +It was so. They all glanced up, and at the window Barbara's pale face +was visible. +</P> + +<P> +A sudden thought came to Philip, and, leading Matthew into the open, he +pointed to the blacksmith, and threw an inquiring look to his sister. +She hesitated a second or two, and then nodded yes with cheery +emphasis, so Philip led Matthew away and supplemented the story he had +already told him with the startling announcement that all the time +there actually was a fugitive Cavalier in the house. +</P> + +<P> +Matthew Hale whistled; he had no words. +</P> + +<P> +"And he must reach Portallan," said Philip, "to catch the midnight +tide. Three of us are going to ride with him, and he takes Rupert's +clothes. We should have got him away finely if it hadn't been for these +soldiers." +</P> + +<P> +"Then we must smash the soldiers," said Matthew simply. "How many are +they? Three, and one of them upstairs. And we are five, not counting +Master Jack. Very well. So long as they don't use gunpowder, we can +beat them." +</P> + +<P> +In a few minutes the old soldier had sketched out a plan of action. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +GODFREY FAIRFAX AGAIN PAUSED. +</P> + +<P> +"IT'S GETTING RATHER GOOD," SAID ROBERT. +</P> + +<P> +"HOW SPLENDID IF WE COULD HAVE A CIVIL WAR NOW! +</P> + +<P> +"I LIKE MATTHEW HALE BEST," SAID GREGORY. +</P> + +<P> +"ARE THEY REALLY GOING TO FIGHT? ARE THE BOYS REALLY GOING TO KILL +ANYONE? IT'S SO ROTTEN IN MOST STORIES, BECAUSE THEY ONLY TALK ABOUT +IT." +</P> + +<P> +"WAIT," SAID THE AUTHOR. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +The sentinels were stationed each at one door at the back of the house, +twenty or thirty yards apart. The principal entrance they had locked, +so that there remained to guard only the two doors into the courtyard. +Their instructions were to permit the boys to pass in and out, and to +ride off at evening unmolested, but the attacks made upon them prompted +the additional precaution to keep the aggressive four out of the house +altogether. The two men walked up and down at their posts, and +occasionally exchanged a remark together, and occasionally threw a +glance at the shrubbery. They seemed, however, to feel no apprehension. +</P> + +<P> +"Can any one of you climb?" the blacksmith asked suddenly. +</P> + +<P> +"I can," said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"Famous!" said the blacksmith; "then come with me." So saying, he led +the way down the shrubbery until the front of the house was in view. +"Now," he added, "you shall climb that pipe." And he pointed to a pipe +by the doorway. "The ivy will help you." +</P> + +<P> +"And when I am at the top?" Jack asked. +</P> + +<P> +"When you are at the top," said the blacksmith, "you will loosen a +stone and drop it on the head of one of your friends +yonder"—indicating the courtyard with a jerk of his head. "That will +settle him. At the same moment I'll overwhelm the other. We must +prevent them firing at any costs. But don't miss him, whatever you do, +or we are worse off than before." +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Jack, "I shall aim very carefully. I will wait till he is +exactly underneath, and then, plob! It will get him on his topknot." +</P> + +<P> +The ivy was, of course, out of sight of the two sentries so long as +they stayed at their posts; but, as anyone who knows Myddelton Hall, +which is little altered since that time, will understand, a very +trifling extension of his beat would bring one of them into a position +to command the carriagedrive which Jack had to cross to get from the +shrubbery to the house. However, the boy sauntered off, looking as +aimless as a piece of floating thistledown, and gained the house +unperceived. Directly he was past the soldiers' line of vision he +became brisker, and in a few minutes the party in the shrubbery, who +had by this time returned to their original post, and at the point in +the bushes nearest to the sentries, saw him scrambling over the roof. +</P> + +<P> +"If he were hurt," said the blacksmith, "the Colonel would never +forgive me." +</P> + +<P> +"He's climbed that too often for danger of accidents," said Philip. +</P> + +<P> +Jack was now crawling along a coping just over the farther sentry, and +they watched him picking out the mortar from between two big stones +with his knife. In five minutes he had it loose, and, grasping it with +both hands, he pushed it close to the edge, and then peeped over. The +soldier was some yards from the plumb. Jack looked down at the +shrubbery for guidance. The smith raised his hand to signify patience. +Jack waited. Breathlessly the ambushed party watched the two soldiers, +who were now talking together. Would they never return to their doors? +Five anxious minutes passed, and then, with a look round, Jack's man +began to move nearer his position under the coping. Once he stopped, +and, retracing half a step, called out a facetious after-thought. The +boys grunted impatiently, and the blacksmith swore in his beard. Then +the soldier took another step back, laughing at his wit, yet moving +irresolutely, as though he had another word or two to add to the joke. +After this his progress backwards was steady. +</P> + +<P> +At last, when he was within a yard of the precise spot, and not one of +the attacking party had a grain of patience left, the smith dropped his +hand, and Jack toppled the stone over the edge. It fell with a terrible +swiftness; the soldier completed his yard of step, and the block took +him, not on the crown, but on the right shoulder. It was, however, +enough. Down he fell without a sound. +</P> + +<P> +His companion, glancing up at the instant, saw him fall, and, leaving +his matchlock, ran to his assistance. At the same moment the smith and +the boys rushed from the shrubbery. The soldier, running towards his +friend, observed them approaching, checked himself in bewilderment, and +then swung round on his heel and made for his weapon. But Matthew was +too quick for him. The smith was quite twenty yards distant, but, +gathering himself together, he flung out his arm, and with all his +might threw the iron bar at the retreating sentry. The missile sped +true; over and over it twisted in the air, and, catching the soldier +with a horrid thud in the back, laid him low. +</P> + +<P> +"Hurrah!" cried Philip. +</P> + +<P> +"Hurrah!" cried Jack, peering down from the roof as the others bound +the two wounded men with ropes. It was quickly done, and they were +hauled into the stable and secured safely therein, and old Digger told +off to watch them and mind them as well as he might. +</P> + +<P> +"Now we can go ahead," was Matthew's comment, grimly uttered, as he +opened the door. Philip was for accompanying him, but Matthew said no. +"In a minute or two I will be back with your sister," he added. "I want +to settle the other man alone. I have a few scores to pay off." +</P> + +<P> +He sprang up the stairs three at a bound, grasping his iron bar firmly, +and at last came to Barbara's landing. There before the door stood the +Roundhead, who evidently had heard nothing of the disturbance below. +</P> + +<P> +"Ha, smith," he cried, on spying Matthew, "what are you looking for?" +</P> + +<P> +"I came to have a little talk," said Matthew easily, taking in his man +with a quick glance. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, then, you had best descend those stairs again," replied the +soldier; "I'm in no mood for talking." +</P> + +<P> +"Now, that's curious," said Matthew genially, leaning against the wall, +"because I am. I never felt more disposed to conversation in my life." +</P> + +<P> +The soldier scowled and fingered his matchlock. +</P> + +<P> +"But perhaps," Matthew continued, darting forward suddenly, and with a +blow of the iron bar knocking the gun from the man's hand—"perhaps a +little tussle would be more to your liking. I have a mind to smash your +face. What do you say?" +</P> + +<P> +The soldier drew his sword. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Matthew, striking it down with the bar; "I don't want iron. +It's so noisy. I have the sound of iron all day in my smithy. Give me a +little change." He kicked the sword along the passage, and threw his +bar after it. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said he, "we are equal. Come!" +</P> + +<P> +So saying, the blacksmith tapped the Roundhead on the chin. The soldier +made an attempt to defend himself, but fisticuffs were out of his line, +and Matthew had a series of easy openings. The smith punished him badly +for a while, and then, remarking that he had set his heart on spoiling +one or two more Roundheads before he died, followed the words with a +blow on the soldier's nose that laid him low. +</P> + +<P> +The blacksmith pulled himself together, and then, opening a cupboard +door near by, pushed the sentry into it and turned the key. +</P> + +<P> +The next thing was to liberate Barbara, who, when she heard what had +happened, asked with nice tact if Matthew did not think that they could +talk more comfortably in the kitchen, and Matthew replied that his +brain was always more fertile in the presence of cold pasty and ale +than at any other time. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"WAS THAT ALL RIGHT?" GODFREY FAIRFAX ASKED GREGORY. +</P> + +<P> +"FIRST-RATE," HE SAID. "I CAN'T THINK WHY YOUR BOOKS DON'T SUCCEED." +</P> + +<P> +"PERHAPS THIS IS THE BEST OF THEM," ROBERT SUGGESTED. +</P> + +<P> +"BARBARA IS VERY BRAVE," SAID JANET. "I ADMIRE HER TREMENDOUSLY." +</P> + +<P> +"AND PHILIP, TOO," SAID HESTER. +</P> + +<P> +"OH, BUT JACK AND THE STONE IS BEST," SAID GREGORY. "I COULD HAVE DONE +THAT." +</P> + +<P> +"SO COULD I," SAID HORACE CAMPBELL; "IT'S JUST WHAT I WANT TO +DO—THINGS LIKE THAT." +</P> + +<P> +"YOU'RE RATHER BLOOD-THIRSTY LITTLE BOYS," SAID GODFREY FAIRFAX. +"PERHAPS I HAD BETTER BEGIN AGAIN. IT IS GOING TO BE QUIETER NOW." +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Once in the kitchen, Barbara and Philip and the blacksmith took rapid +counsel together as to the best course of action. It was now late in +the afternoon; the Captain might be back with another bodyguard at any +time, and, once he returned, there would be no chance of getting the +stranger away. It was therefore important to furnish him with the +disguise—Rupert's clothes—and spirit him out of the house at once. On +the other hand, as he did not count upon being at sea till midnight, +this would simply mean exchanging one hiding-place for another; but, +all things considered, it was imperative that he should stay no longer +at the Hall. +</P> + +<P> +This decided, Rupert was called in to divest himself of his clothes, +and soon afterwards he sent down the bundle, and with it Barbara sought +the stranger, while Matthew, feeling very well satisfied with the day's +work, sauntered to the stables to examine the wounds of the Roundhead +soldiers. He found them groaning, but in a way to recover, and then, +calling the boys, he set them to prepare the horses against their +journey. It was approaching evening, but the month being June, there +was no chance of a dark departure, even if they waited as late as +half-past eight, so that one hour of leaving was almost as safe as +another. +</P> + +<P> +Barbara found her prisoner very tired of his confinement, and very +hungry. She explained the cause of her delay, and, leaving him to +change into the clothes as quickly as he might, she hurried off for +food. When she came back, the young man, looking for all the world like +a darker Rupert, was standing in the library with his own clothes in +his hand. +</P> + +<P> +"My brother will tell you what has been devised for you," Barbara said. +</P> + +<P> +"Thank you," he replied, putting out his hand. "Thank you, sweet +preserver. I shall see you again, I know; but it may be long, very +long. Will you keep this ring? Show it to your father when he returns, +and guard it carefully till we meet in the future. Then you shall give +it me once more." He slipped the ring on her finger and kissed it. +</P> + +<P> +A moment later he stood in the courtyard beside Rupert's horse, where +the others were waiting. +</P> + +<P> +"Heavens!" said Hugh to Philip; "what's happened to Rupe?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," echoed Vernon, "who's that in old Rupe's clothes?" +</P> + +<P> +"Shut up!" Philip hissed, fixing them with a meaning glance. "Say +another word, and I'll flay you! That's Rupert Ommaney, and no one +else, and I warn you to remember it." +</P> + +<P> +"Come along, Rupert," he cried cheerily, aloud to the stranger. "It's +time we were off." +</P> + +<P> +With that they swung into the saddle, and rattled out of the courtyard, +the stranger in the midst. As he rounded the corner of the house he +looked back and smiled farewell to Barbara and the smith and Jack, who +stood together watching the departure. Barbara waved her hand, and a +moment later her fugitive was out of sight. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"THAT'S NOT ALL, IS IT?" HESTER INQUIRED ANXIOUSLY, AS MISS REDSTONE +STOPPED. +</P> + +<P> +"ISN'T IT A GOOD ENDING?" SHE ASKED. +</P> + +<P> +"NO," SAID GREGORY, "OF COURSE NOT. I WANT TO KNOW IF HE GOT TO THE +HARBOUR ALL RIGHT, AND WHO HE WAS." +</P> + +<P> +"OH, I THINK WE KNOW WHO HE WAS," JANET SAID. +</P> + +<P> +"WHO?" GREGORY ASKED. "I DON'T KNOW." "WELL, IT'S NOT THE END," SAID +MISS REDSTONE; "BUT THE END IS VERY NEAR, AND THAT WILL EXPLAIN +EVERYTHING." AND SHE BEGAN AGAIN. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +The boys and their companion had not been gone an hour when in rode the +Captain and his two soldiers with a terrible clatter. The Captain +leaped from his horse, and strode into the house, roaring for the men +he had left on guard. Barbara, who was in the library with Rupert, +heard the noise and divined its meaning. +</P> + +<P> +"Rupert," she said swiftly, on a sudden inspiration, "will you add one +more kindness to your long list? Will you hide in here for a few +minutes?" So saying, she showed him the secret chamber. +</P> + +<P> +Rupert hesitated not a moment, but swung himself up and was lost to +view. The picture hardly descended when the Captain entered. +</P> + +<P> +"Ha!" he cried, casting a quick glance at Barbara. "So you have escaped +my soldiers' vigilance. A nice story of traitorous mutiny I shall have +to report to London! Three of the Parliament's men beaten and bound, +and rebels here in hiding. For there is a hiding-place here, I will lay +my life, and by the look in your eyes, mistress, the bird is still in +it." +</P> + +<P> +So saying, he set his men once more to work on the walls, and himself +attacked the portrait. Barbara stood by watching them. After five +minutes' fumbling the spring was touched. The Captain leaped into the +cavity, and they heard him utter a cry of triumph. A moment later he +came forth, leading Rupert. But his expression of joy vanished when he +gained the light, dim though it was, and found that his captive was but +a schoolboy, and a laughing one at that. +</P> + +<P> +"Tricked again!" he cried, as he flung the lad off and dashed from the +room. +</P> + +<P> +His men followed, and in a moment they were all in the saddle. +</P> + +<P> +Barbara turned to Rupert with a smile. "Thank you!" she said. +</P> + +<P> +"You are splendid!" was all he could say in reply. +</P> + +<P> +"If you will bring me a candle," said Barbara, "I will look at the +little room again." +</P> + +<P> +Bidding Rupert remain exactly where he was, she entered the secret +room. "The Captain was too impetuous," she remarked, picking up a +letter addressed to herself; "he ought to have gone on after +discovering Rupert." "To Mistress Myddelton," the superscription ran, +and she opened it with trembling fingers. +</P> + +<P> +"Thank you," was all it said, but the signature struck her dizzy. It +was the signature of the exiled Prince. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"I KNEW IT!" HESTER EXCLAIMED. +</P> + +<P> +"BUT IT DOESN'T HURT THE STORY TO KNOW IT?" MISS REDSTONE ASKED +ANXIOUSLY. +</P> + +<P> +"OH, NO, NOT AT ALL," SAID JANET AND MARY. "PLEASE GO ON." +</P> + +<P> +MISS REDSTONE RESUMED. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +On leaving the Hall the boys and their companion had turned at once +down the highroad in the direction of Mr. Fullarton's at Framshott, +which was precisely the opposite direction to Portallan and the sea, +Philip's idea being to ride for a few miles as if on the journey back +to school, and to be seen by as many people who knew them by sight as +possible, then to branch off into a sheltering wood, wait there till +dark, and start again, refreshed, in a bee-line for the harbour. In +this way the Captain would, if he were to return and follow them, be +put on a wrong scent, and give up any chase as a waste of effort. +</P> + +<P> +But Barbara's trick in hiding Rupert undid the plan, for the first +person whom the Captain and his men met on leaving the Hall for the +second time swore so positively to having seen the FOUR schoolboys that +the Roundhead's suspicions were at once aroused, and, turning his +horse's head, he led the way at all speed towards Portallan. +</P> + +<P> +"Then there was a man there all the time," he cried bitterly to +himself, "and he has escaped in that puppy's clothes! 'Sdeath, if I +catch him now...!" He ground his teeth together in his rage, and dug +the rowels of his spurs into the horse's side. Without another word +they rode at the gallop through the growing darkness. +</P> + +<P> +The boys were riding together at a good swinging pace, the stranger, in +Rupert's clothes, leading the way by a neck, Philip beside him, and the +other two behind. It was not a dark night, but a mist rolling inland +from the sea—one of those white mists well known along the south +coast, which predicate hot weather—enveloped them impenetrably except +at very short range. +</P> + +<P> +"Halt!" they heard the Captain cry, halfway down the hill. +</P> + +<P> +"Ay, it is likely we shall halt for that," said the stranger, with a +laugh. "I'll show him," and, turning in his saddle, he discharged a +pistol down the road. "That's for our enemies," he remarked grimly, +"and may it hit someone!" +</P> + +<P> +A few moments later came an answering shot, whistling past their heads +ominously. +</P> + +<P> +"Break for the nearest copse," replied the stranger, promptly, "for a +council of war. Quick, now's the time! The top of the hill is cover for +us." So saying, he put his horse to the bank, cleared it, and galloped +over the field to the trees which loomed grey and indefinite before +them. +</P> + +<P> +The others followed. In two minutes they were under the boughs. Not +daring to breathe, they heard the troopers thunder along the highroad, +all unconscious for the moment of the trick that had been played them. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said the stranger briefly, "we must divide. I shall proceed to +Portallan alone very warily." +</P> + +<P> +The faces of the boys fell at these words. Relinquish their duty before +a blow had been struck? It was humiliating—impossible. Philip first +found voice. "No, sir," he cried emphatically; "nothing of the kind! My +sister bade me not leave your side until you embarked for France, and +her word is my law." +</P> + +<P> +"And we stand by Phil," said Vernon, with equal emphasis. +</P> + +<P> +"You are brave boys," the stranger answered, "but you must do to-night +as I say. There is no time to argue here, and if I miss the tide I am +undone, for loyal captains are rare birds, I promise you. There may be +not another safe ship this fortnight." +</P> + +<P> +"But the enemy," said Philip,—"you will have to pass them. How can you +do that single-handed?" +</P> + +<P> +"Besides," Hugh interpolated, "is it fair to rob us of our sport like +this?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Vernon, supporting him, "it is seldom enough one has any +chance of striking a blow for the cause. We are well armed. We are four +to their three." +</P> + +<P> +The young man made a gesture of impatience. +</P> + +<P> +"Peace," he said. "I have told you we must separate; let that be final. +You, Philip, shall accompany me part of the way, at any rate—I owe you +that; but the others will ride each towards the sea by different but +fairly direct ways. They will probably each be pursued, but must do the +best they can, avoiding bloodshed if possible. The captain has two men +with him, and Vernon and Hugh must each decoy one of them away in +pursuit. That will leave merely the captain, who is certain to ride to +the port. You, Philip, will divert him, and the way will thus be clear +and open to me to get on board. Please God, we all get through safely!" +</P> + +<P> +So saying, the stranger shook hands with Hugh and Vernon, who were +convinced by something in his voice that this was their master and +nothing more was to be said, and in a moment he and Philip were gone. +</P> + +<P> +Events happened precisely as the stranger had foretold. Vernon and +Hugh, riding full tilt towards Portallan, attracted each a Roundhead +soldier, and each boy used his knowledge of the country to lead the men +a wild-goose chase. Vernon's pursuer succumbed first, for he and his +horse fell into a small but sufficient chalk-pit a mile or two from +Framshott just as dawn was breaking. As for Hugh's man, after three +hours' zigzag riding through the mist he was deftly persuaded to gallop +into the Worminglore bog, and there Hugh, flinging a parting word of +derision, left him floundering. The man fired a bullet in the direction +of the boy's voice, but it did no harm except to his hat, and only +served to increase Hugh's reputation among his companions at school as +a desperate fellow. It is not every boy who has a bullet-hole in his +hat. +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile Philip and the stranger spurred to the sea by a devious +course. They rode silently, the stranger's hand alert to seize his +pistol. Suddenly, when only a mile or two from the harbour, a light or +two being visible on the ships riding at anchor, he reined in with a +jerk before a shepherd's hut which stood at the edge of a sheepfold on +the naked down, a yard from the road. +</P> + +<P> +"Just the thing!" he cried; "we have still an hour." +</P> + +<P> +Bidding Philip stay there and keep watch, he leaped from his horse and +opened the door of the hut. +</P> + +<P> +"Who's there?" growled the voice of the shepherd. +</P> + +<P> +"A friend, if you hold your peace," said the young man; "otherwise a +foe, and a strong one, I can promise you." He clicked a pistol as he +spoke, and the shepherd stood up and pulled his forelock. +</P> + +<P> +"I want no words," said the stranger, "and no delay. Do as I tell you, +in the King's name." +</P> + +<P> +"Ay, marry!" cried the shepherd; "in the King's name I'll do anything." +</P> + +<P> +"Good fellow," said the stranger, "well said. Take off that smock and +those legcasings." +</P> + +<P> +The man took them off. The stranger divested himself of Rupert's +clothes at the same time, and hastily donned those of the shepherd. +"Tie mine in a bundle," he said to the man. "I shall leave you cold +to-night, I fear, but here is money. Lie close in a blanket till the +morrow, and then send for your wife to buy other clothes. But keep your +tongue from wagging." +</P> + +<P> +So saying, the stranger shouldered his bundle, and, taking the +shepherd's crook in his hand, he left the hut and rejoined Philip. "My +dear boy," he said, "I must leave you now. I shall creep into the town +under cover of this disguise, safely enough, and be on board in half an +hour. Farewell. I shall never forget your services to me, as you will +be reminded some day, and from a quarter you least expect." With these +words he shook the boy's hand and was lost in the mist. +</P> + +<P> +Philip waited irresolutely for some minutes. Then a plan came to him +which, if successful, would make the humiliation of the Roundhead +complete. "Yes," he said "I'll do it;" and forthwith he urged his horse +towards the town at a smart trot leading the other by the reins and +talking loudly with its imaginary rider. The ruse was successful. The +Roundhead Captain was, as Philip had suspected, in ambush just at the +outskirts, all ready to dart forth and at last make the capture. When +within a dozen yards of his form, dimly outlined in the fog, Philip +loosed the led horse, and lashing it sharply over the flanks, turned +his own steed, and rode off at full gallop which he did not slacken +till he reached home. He glowed as he rode. +</P> + +<P> +Barbara's head appeared at the window in response to his clatter. +Calling the single word "Safe!" from the gate, he spurred on to +Framshott. +</P> + +<P> +"Outwitted clean!" said the Captain to himself, as he came up at last +with the riderless animal two hours after. "Outwitted, discredited, and +by a parcel of children! However, let's make the best of it;" and so +saying, he urged his horse towards Myddelton Hall, leading the +stranger's by the bridle. +</P> + +<P> +At three in the morning, when the sun was rising, and the air was sweet +and cool, and songs of birds made music all around him, Philip rode +into the yard of the school-house. He found Rupert waiting for him. +</P> + +<P> +"Hugh and Vernon are in the kitchen making a famine," said Master +Ommaney. "Old Full's down there with them, and he's as pleased as a +Merry Andrew about it all! He keeps shaking hands with us." +</P> + +<P> +"It's been grand," said Philip, as he shut the stable door on his +horse. "I'm so sorry you couldn't come, too, Rupe, old boy." +</P> + +<P> +At about the same time the Captain thundered on the Hall door. The +blacksmith very deliberately descended the stairs to unlock it. Barbara +followed. +</P> + +<P> +"You must give me lodging to-night," the Captain said curtly. "My men +will be here soon, and there are three good fellows to be cared for to +whom your servants have done serious mischief." +</P> + +<P> +Barbara, looking contrite, told the Captain that a room was at his +service, and there was food in the kitchen. He attended first to his +horse, and then she set a brave supper before him and the smith. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, young lady," said the Captain at length, "I must compliment you +on your cleverness. You nested your bird well, and you saw to it that +he flew well, too. All we have to show for it is a broken nose, a +broken shoulder, and a broken back. It is a sad business for us all; +bad for you, when head quarters come to hear of it, and bad for me, in +not being sharper. But it might have been worse," he added; "why, the +fugitive might have been the Prince himself, instead of this +twopenny-halfpenny spy!" Barbara smiled. +</P> + +<HR ALIGN="center" WIDTH="60%"> + +<P> +In conclusion it may be said that, as it turned out, no more was heard +of the matter by Colonel Myddelton. The Roundhead Captain felt that the +day's work did not sufficiently redound to his credit, and he shrank +from the chaff that would follow when it was known that a girl and some +schoolboys had outwitted him. He therefore kept silence. +</P> + +<P> +Some years had to pass before Barbara and Philip received their reward; +but one of the first acts of the Merry Monarch on ascending the throne +was to make Philip a knight and to send Barbara a pair of very +beautiful horses and a carriage. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +THERE WAS A SILENCE AFTER GODFREY FAIRFAX HAD FINISHED. +</P> + +<P> +THEN, "IS IT TRUE?" GREGORY ASKED. +</P> + +<P> +"IS IT A GOOD STORY?" THE AUTHOR INQUIRED, BY WAY OF REPLY. +</P> + +<P> +"OH, YES," SAID GREGORY. "RIPPING!" +</P> + +<P> +"THEN LET'S CONSIDER IT TRUE," SAID MISS REDSTONE. +</P> + +<P> +"OF COURSE IT'S TRUE," SAID HESTER. +</P> + +<P> +"DO YOU LIKE IT AS WELL AS 'FOR THE GOOD CAUSE?" MISS REDSTONE ASKED +HORACE. +</P> + +<P> +"NOT QUITE," HE SAID, "BUT VERY NEARLY." +</P> + +<P> +"AND YOU?" SHE INQUIRED OF JACK. +</P> + +<P> +"IT'S JOLLY INTERESTING," HE SAID, "ANYWAY." +</P> + +<P> +"WELL, I'M VERY MUCH OBLIGED TO YOU FOR LISTENING TO ME SO LONG," MISS +REDSTONE SAID. "YOU'VE BEEN VERY KIND, AND YOU'VE CHEERED ME UP +EXTREMELY. GOOD-BYE. I SHALL NEVER FORGET YOUR KINDNESS, AND I SHALL +SEND YOU THE STORY WHEN IT IS PRINTED." +</P> + +<P> +AND AFTER GIVING HER THEIR ADDRESS, THEY RESUMED THEIR JOURNEY, AND +DISCUSSED THE ROMANCE AT INTERVALS ALL THE WAY TO BREDON HILL. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap15"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 15 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE RUNAWAY PONIES +</H3> + +<P> +The distance from Evesham to Elmley Castle, a little village under +Bredon Hill, is only five or six miles, and the Slowcoaches were +comfortably encamped in a field there by six o'clock, for at Evesham +they did no more than walk through the churchyard to the beautiful +square Bell Tower with its little company of spires on the roof. Mary +bought a guide at a shop at the corner of the market-place and read the +story. +</P> + +<P> +This Bell Tower, with a gateway and a wall or so, is all that remains +of a Benedictine abbey which was built by the Bishop of Worcester in +the reign of Ethelred. The Bishop, it seems, had a swineherd named +Eoves, who one day, while wandering in the Forest of Arden ("In which +the scene of 'As You Like It' is laid, Hester, and which used to cover +all the ground where Evesham now stands"), was visited in a vision by +three radiant damsels. He returned at once and told the Bishop, who, on +being led to the same spot, after a preparation of fasting and prayer, +had the same vision, and at once recognized the damsels as the Virgin +Mary and two Angels. +</P> + +<P> +At that time the meaning of such heavenly visitations was plain, and +the Bishop at once set about building an abbey on the spot. He +appointed himself the first abbot and named it after his swineherd +Eoves—Eoves'ham. +</P> + +<P> +The abbey was large and prosperous, but the Danes destroyed it in one +of their raids, and it had to be rebuilt on a more splendid scale. Then +came Henry VIII. and his quarrel with the Church of Rome, and the abbey +was confiscated and given as a grant to Sir Philip Hoby, one of his +friends, who at once (being a man of the type of the Rev. Francis +Gastrell) raised what money he could on it by turning it into a quarry +for stones. And that is why so many old houses in this neighbourhood +have carved stones in their walls. +</P> + +<P> +The party then returned to the marketplace and walked down to the +bridge, where they joined Kink and set out for their goal. +</P> + +<P> +Elmley Castle is one street, with a ruined cross at one end and the +church at the other, and the great hill over all. The cottages are as +white as snowdrops, and they have heavy thatch roofs. The women wear +large blue Worcestershire sunbonnets. The only shop is a post-office +too, so that Robert was able to send his telegrams very easily. +</P> + +<P> +After supper some of them walked through the churchyard (which has a +very curious sun-dial in it) to the meadows beyond, in search of the +castle, the site of which is mentioned on the map, but is quite +undiscoverable now; while Robert made friends with an old labourer +smoking his pipe outside the great tithe barn, and asked him about the +road up Bredon' as it was his project to sleep on the very top of the +hill the next night. +</P> + +<P> +But the old man changed their plans completely; for he convinced Robert +that the Slowcoach would never get to the top without at least two more +horses to help, and even then it would be an unwise course to take, +because there was no proper road, and it might be badly shaken. +</P> + +<P> +It was therefore arranged that the older and stronger children should +take their lunch to the top of the hill and eat it there, and that +Kink, with Hester and Gregory, should go round the hill? which rises +all alone from the plain like a great sleeping monster, on the flat +roads, and meet them on the other, or south side, at Beckford, in the +afternoon; and they should then go on for five or six miles farther to +their campingground near Oxenton. +</P> + +<P> +The night was uneventful except for a rather startling visit from a +peacock, which stood just inside the boys' tent and uttered such sounds +as only a peacock can. +</P> + +<P> +Both parties started early the next morning. Gregory and Hester, being +for the first time alone as owners of the Slowcoach, were very proud +and excited, and Gregory insisted upon Janet giving him two shillings +in case of any emergency, although Kink had plenty of money. The nice +old women in the Worcestershire sunbonnets came to see them start, and, +well supplied with stone gingerbeer from the Queen's Head—Queen +Elizabeth's head, as it happens—off they went, Gregory beside Kink, +and Hester inside reading Hans Andersen's story of the nightingale. +</P> + +<P> +The others, after waving good-bye, set their feet bravely towards the +slopes of Bredon Hill—no small undertaking, for it is very steep and +the day was hot. But the pathway is pleasant, first passing by the +gardens of the great house, where, burning blue on the wall, they saw +their visitor of the night; and then through a deep lane to a hillocky +meadow, and so up to the turf of the higher slopes, where the views +begin, and where it is very agreeable to rest. +</P> + +<P> +But Robert urged them on. "It is quite flat at the top," he said, "and +there is a tower at the very edge, and a perfect place for a picnic." +</P> + +<P> +Here we will leave them, climbing pantingly up, and follow the +Slowcoach, as Moses drew it steadily along the lanes at the base of the +hill, between the high hedges. At first, as I said, Kink and Gregory +walked; but after a while they both sat in front, just over the shafts, +and Gregory held the reins (he called it driving), and they discussed +life—which means that Gregory asked a thousand questions and Kink did +his best to answer or ignore them. +</P> + +<P> +"It's not true, is it, that when all the cows in a field stand up it's +going to rain?" +</P> + +<P> +"Don't you think Bredon Hill would be a ripping place to start to fly +from?" +</P> + +<P> +"Shall we stop and cook our dinner, or have cold things?" +</P> + +<P> +"It's not true, is it, that whenever you see a white horse you see a +red-haired girl? I suppose that means only in London, where there are +so many people?" +</P> + +<P> +"Do you know that you can't walk over London Bridge without seeing a +white horse?" +</P> + +<P> +"Do you think that Moses is ever going to have a stone in his shoe so +that I can get it out with my knife? Couldn't we drive him over a very +stony place?" +</P> + +<P> +"You can't really tell the time by dandelions, can you?" +</P> + +<P> +And so forth, till Kink's head would have ached if he had not trained +it not to. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory was rattling on in this way when suddenly they heard a +screaming and scrambling and thudding behind them, and a moment later a +chaise with a little girl in it, drawn by a pair of grey ponies, dashed +past at a fearful pace, only just avoiding the caravan, and disappeared +in a cloud of dust; and then after a minute or so came a tremendous +shattering crash, and all was still. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a smash-up," said Kink, urging Moses into a trot. "We must help +them;" and at the same time Hester's white face appeared at the window +and implored Kink to drive faster. +</P> + +<P> +In a minute or so they saw a moving mass at the side of the road, which +they knew to be the broken chaise, and a farm labourer holding the head +of the one pony that was on its feet. Kink tied Moses to a gate-post, +and ran to the man's help, telling the children to wait a moment. Both +were rather frightened, and they stood hand in hand by Moses and +watched. +</P> + +<P> +They saw Kink lift something from the chaise and lay it on the grass. +Then they saw him hacking at the harness with his pruning-knife until +the pony was free, when the man led it to another gate-post and tied it +there. Then Kink hacked again, and drew the carriage away from the pony +that was lying on the ground; and then he and the man lifted the bundle +once more and came with it very carefully to the Slowcoach, Kink +calling out to Gregory to open the door and put some pillows on the +floor. +</P> + +<P> +When Kink and the man reached the Slowcoach, Hester saw that they were +carrying a girl of about her own age, who was lying in their arms quite +still, with her eyes closed. +</P> + +<P> +They placed her gently on the cushions, and Kink dashed a little water +on her face. +</P> + +<P> +After a moment or so she opened her eyes and asked where she was. +</P> + +<P> +"You're all right," said Hester. "You've had an accident. We're taking +care of you." +</P> + +<P> +Then the little girl remembered. "The ponies!" she cried. "Are they +hurt?" +</P> + +<P> +"I'm afraid one of them is," said Kink. "But never mind now. The great +thing is that you weren't thrown out. Keep quiet now, missie, and we'll +look after everything." +</P> + +<P> +But the little girl would not be silenced. +</P> + +<P> +"Which one is hurt?" she asked. "Which one? Is it Marshall or +Snelgrove?" +</P> + +<P> +"I don't know," said Kink. "They're both alike." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no, they're not," said the little girl. "Marshall has a white star +between his eyes. Oh, do say Marshall's all right! Marshall's my very +own." +</P> + +<P> +"I'll go and see," said Gregory; and he ran off, and came back to say +that Marshall was the one that seemed to be all right, but Snelgrove +had broken his leg and couldn't move. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I'm so glad about Marshall," said the girl; "but poor Tommy, how +sorry he'll be!" +</P> + +<P> +"See if you can get up, missie," said Kink. "I want to know if you're +hurt anywhere." +</P> + +<P> +The little girl sat up and then stood up. "I feel all right," she said, +"only very giddy." +</P> + +<P> +Kink uttered a sigh of relief. "Drink this cold water," he said. "That +will make you much better. And now tell us all about the accident, +because we shall have to let your people know." +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said the little girl, "mother and I were driving to Ashton to +see Aunt May; and mother had just got out to leave the <I>British +Workman</I> at old Mr. Dimmock's, when the ponies took fright and ran +away. I held the reins as long as I could, and when I saw your caravan +in front I screamed to warn you, and then there was a terrible crash, +and I don't remember anything else." +</P> + +<P> +"And what will your poor mamma be doing?" said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, poor mother!" said the little girl. "She'll be so nervous! But +she'll be coming after us as fast as she can, because she saw them +start off." +</P> + +<P> +"Then I think," said Kink, "the best thing to do is for us to leave +this man here to mind the ponies and tell your mamma you're all right; +and we'll go on to Ashton as quick as we can, and send back some help. +We'll take you to your aunt's, missie, and the man will tell your mamma +when she comes up what we've done. I'm so glad you're not hurt." +</P> + +<P> +So Hester and Gregory were left with the little girl, who told them her +name was Patricia Mordan, and she was ten, and they lived near +Fladbury, and she had a King Charles spaniel; while Kink urged Moses +towards Ashton, which was only a mile or so away. +</P> + +<P> +Hester put the kettle on the Beatrice stove, thinking that tea was the +best thing, and Gregory sat down and looked at their guest, and thought +what a splendid adventure it was to tell the others about when they met +them later. +</P> + +<P> +Patricia, who was now in a deck-chair, examined the caravan in a kind +of ecstasy. "What a lovely place it is!" she said. "Do you really live +here? How scrumptiously exciting!" +</P> + +<P> +"My bed's over there," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Where do you stop at night?" Patricia asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I have to go to the farmers and get leave to camp on their land," said +Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"And is it just you two and the driver?" Patricia asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said Gregory; "there are five others, but they are walking +over Bredon Hill. They said we could not walk so far, which is rot, of +course; but I'm glad we didn't, because then we shouldn't have been +here to save your life." +</P> + +<P> +"Mother will be very grateful to you for being so kind," said Patricia. +"Poor mother! she'll be so frightened about me. And Tommy—how dreadful +for him to lose Snelgrove!" +</P> + +<P> +"Who's Tommy?" Gregory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Tommy's my brother," said Patricia. "He's twelve. Aunt May gave +Snelgrove to him and Marshall to me last Christmas. They've never run +away before. I wish we had a caravan." +</P> + +<P> +"Caravans are very jolly," said Gregory. "Things are always happening, +too." +</P> + +<P> +"I'd rather have a sweet grey pony than a caravan," said Hester, +bringing a cup of tea. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap16"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 16 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE BLACK SPANIELS +</H3> + +<P> +Gregory, who was looking out of the door and meditating an escape from +so much dampness, and a conversation on the whole matter with Kink, +exclaimed suddenly, "Hello, I guess this is your mother." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, it is," cried Patricia, standing up and waving her handkerchief +to a lady seated in a milk-cart, which was being driven after them at a +tremendous pace. "I wondered who she'd get to bring her here, and it's +young Daniel Wilson. Tell your man to stop, please." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Mordan, whom Gregory thought both a nice and a pretty lady, leapt +out of the milk-cart and ran up the steps of the Slowcoach, and mother +and daughter hugged each other for quite two minutes, while Gregory +looked at young Daniel Wilson, and Patricia began to cry afresh—this +time because she was happy. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Mordan was happy too. The grief she had felt for the accident and +the injury to poor Snelgrove, whom she had left in agony by the road, +passed away when she found her little daughter unhurt. +</P> + +<P> +She sat holding Patricia's hand, and asked Hester a number of +questions, and gave her a number of thanks all together. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory meanwhile had got out, and was asking young Daniel Wilson how +ponies are shot; and what he did about getting milk to the station when +the snow was two feet thick; and if the cows often kicked the buckets +over. +</P> + +<P> +"It's not us," said Hester, "it's Kink who was so useful." +</P> + +<P> +"Who is Kink?" Mrs. Mordan asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Our gardener," said Hester, "but he drives the caravan for us;" and +gradually she told the whole Slowcoach story. +</P> + +<P> +By this time they were at Ashton, and, after giving instructions about +looking after the ponies,—sending for a veterinary surgeon and so +forth,—Mrs. Mordan showed Kink the way to Aunt May's house, which they +reached just before two. +</P> + +<P> +Aunt May was standing by the gate? with five black spaniels about her, +looking anxiously down the road—a tall lady with grey hair and +top-boots, and a little whip in her hand. +</P> + +<P> +"No," she said, as Kink stopped at the gate, "I don't want any chairs +or kettles mended, or, indeed, anything from you at all." +</P> + +<P> +Kink, however, said nothing, but went to the back of the caravan and +helped Mrs. Mordan and Patricia down. +</P> + +<P> +"My precious Lina!" exclaimed Aunt May, when she saw them. "Whatever +has happened?" +</P> + +<P> +"I'll tell you about it indoors," said Mrs. Mordan. "These kind people +are going to stop here for lunch, if you've got enough." +</P> + +<P> +"Of course there's enough," said Aunt May; "but I thought you were +gipsies, or tinkers, or something objectionable. You're not a tinker, +are you?" she said to Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"No," he said, "but I'd like to be a gypsy." +</P> + +<P> +And so they reached the house, which was an old-fashioned one, all +among dark trees, with a very soft lawn in front of it. +</P> + +<P> +Aunt May told Kink to go round to the back and be sure not to let +Diogenes and the dogs fight, and then she began to call at the top of +her voice for Simpkins. +</P> + +<P> +After a while Simpkins appeared—an elderly bald man in a dress suit, +who was evidently the butler. +</P> + +<P> +"Simpkins," said Aunt May, "there will be two more to lunch, and +there's a caravan at the back belonging to this gentleman +here,"—indicating Gregory, who immediately grew three inches all +over,—"and please give the driver a good dinner." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, my lady," said Simpkins; and Hester and Gregory at once began to +look at her with round eyes, for they had never before met anyone who +was titled—I mean to speak to, although they had seen the Lord Mayor +(who is of course a baronet) in his carriage only last November 9. +</P> + +<P> +"And, Simpkins," said Aunt May, "take Mr. What is your name?" she asked +Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Gregory Bruce Avory," said he. +</P> + +<P> +"Take Mr. Bruce Avory to the Pink Room, and get him some hot water." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, my lady," said Simpkins, and Gregory grew another inch all over. +</P> + +<P> +And then Aunt May led the others upstairs. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory finished his washing first, and walked to the dining-room, +which opened on to the lawn, and was very bright and sweet-smelling. +The walls were covered with pictures, and there were roses in blue +bowls wherever a place could be found for them. +</P> + +<P> +By the wall, in a row, were five round baskets, and directly Aunt May +came in the five black spaniels, who were with her, went each to his +basket, and lay there quietly, with his head resting on the edge and +his eyes fixed on his mistress. Their names were Mars, Saturn, Orion, +Mercury, and Jupiter; and from time to time Aunt May called one to her +and gave it a little piece of food, while the others glittered with +expectation. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said Aunt May, "let's get on with our eatin', for I'm sure +you're all hungry, and I know I am. Patricia dear, do you think you can +eat solid things, or shall we get something else?" +</P> + +<P> +Patricia, however, declared that she could eat anything. +</P> + +<P> +"Mr. Bruce Avory," said Aunt May, "you're drinkin' nothing. Would you +rather have lemonade or barley-water?" +</P> + +<P> +Poor Gregory! he knew what he wanted—lemonade—but he didn't know +whether he ought to address Aunt May as "My Lady" or "Your Ladyship" or +"Lady Rusper." He had tried to get a moment with Hester to ask about +it, but without success. +</P> + +<P> +"If she was only our aunt!" he thought, and then said, without using +any name at all, that he would like lemonade. +</P> + +<P> +Lady Rusper made them tell her the story all through once again, "right +from the beginnin'," as she called it; and just as Hester had got to +the end of her part of it a boy arrived leading Marshall, and Patricia +leaped up and rushed across the lawn to fondle her pony. Then she +dashed back for a piece of sugar, and was off again. The boy said that +the blacksmith, who was also a farrier, had seen Marshall, and declared +he was quite sound; but Snelgrove was done for completely, and the trap +was too badly smashed ever to be much use. +</P> + +<P> +"Put Marshall in the stable," said Aunt May, "and have the trap brought +here." +</P> + +<P> +At the news about Snelgrove Patricia began to cry again. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Aunt May, "we must see what can be done. I dare say there +are more ponies in the world. But I suppose we shall all be driven to +motors before long. It's a great shame. I spend most of my time +detestin' the things; but they've got to come. And now," she said to +Hester, "tell me all about your home and your caravan;" and Hester +again told the story, saying "Lady Rusper" with an ease that made +Gregory gasp. +</P> + +<P> +After lunch they all went to the stables, where, in a loose-box, +beautifully snug in the straw, lay another black spaniel, Venus, with +three puppies ("Oh, the darlings!" cried Hester) snuggling to her. +</P> + +<P> +"Do you think your mother would let you keep a spaniel?" Aunt May asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes, now we've got Diogenes as a start," she answered. +</P> + +<P> +"Very well, then," said Aunt May, "if you'd like one of these, you +shall have it directly it's old enough to be sent away—as a memory of +to-day, and as a thankofferin', too. Which would you like," she added, +"Psyche, Cicero, or Circe? This is Cicero, this is Circe, and this is +Psyche." +</P> + +<P> +"Why do all their names begin with 'S'?" Gregory asked; and it was not +till he told Janet about it that he understood why it was that everyone +had laughed so. +</P> + +<P> +"And if you may keep two," Aunt May went on, speaking to Gregory, "I +shall send you one of the next litter. Vesta is going to have puppies +soon. You must write and let me know. And now, if your man has +finished, I expect you'd like to be gettin' on, or the others will be +nervous about you." +</P> + +<P> +And so, after Hester had chosen Circe, they all said very affectionate +farewells, and the Slowcoach rumbled forth again. +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile, what of Janet and Robert and Mary and Jack and Horace? They +had had no adventures at all—nothing but scenery and a pleasant picnic. +</P> + +<P> +Robert had been rightly told about the summit of Bredon Hill, for there +the grass is as short as on the South Downs, and there is a deep fosse +in which to shelter from the wind. +</P> + +<P> +The hill at this western point ends suddenly, at a kind of precipice, +and you look right over the valley of the Avon and the Severn to the +Malverns. Just below on the south-west is Tewkesbury, where the Severn +and the Avon meet, after that becoming the Severn only all the way to +Bristol and the sea. In the far south-west rises the point of the Sugar +Loaf at Abergavenny, and the blue distance is Wales—the country of +King Arthur and Malory. +</P> + +<P> +To the north-west is the smoke of Worcester, and immediately beneath +the hill, winding shiningly about, is the Avon, running by Bredon +village and the Combertons and Pershore, past Cropthorne (where Mr. +MacAngus was perhaps even now painting) and Wood Norton (where the Duke +of Orleans, who ought, Hester held, to be King of France to-day, lives) +to Evesham, and the weir where they had rowed about, and so on to +Stratford. +</P> + +<P> +Robert's maps, fortified by what he had picked up from the old man last +night, told them all these things, and told them also, more or less, +what the "coloured counties" were that they could see; for of course +Mary wanted to know that: Warwickshire, Gloucestershire, Oxfordshire, +Worcestershire, Herefordshire, Monmouthshire. After lunch Mary sang the +beautiful Bredon Hill song to them; and so they descended to the level +ground and to Kink and Hester and Gregory, little expecting to find +them with such exciting things to tell. +</P> + +<P> +From Beckford to Oxenton the great story lasted, eked out with +questions and answers as it proceeded. Thus, Horace wanted to know why +Kink had not sprung to the horses' heads and checked them in their wild +career. +</P> + +<P> +"We couldn't see them," said Gregory; "they were coming up behind, and +we were sitting in front." +</P> + +<P> +Horace was dissatisfied. +</P> + +<P> +"What frightened them?" Jack wanted to know; but Gregory could not say. +Patricia had not explained. +</P> + +<P> +"Fancy not knowing what frightened them!" said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +The fact was that both Jack and Horace were a little overtired, and +perhaps a little jealous of the eventfulness of the Slowcoach's day. +</P> + +<P> +They had been talking so hard that they had not noticed the sky; and +the splashing of raindrops was the first knowledge they had that a +storm was coming. It was nearly seven, and suddenly they all knew that +they were very tired and hungry and rather chilly. Kink stopped Moses +and suggested camping at once. +</P> + +<P> +"Where?" said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Here," said Kink. "Under these trees. There'll be a downpour soon: +better get your supper at once." +</P> + +<P> +They therefore did not make any effort to find a farm, but instantly +unpacked. Hitherto everything had gone smoothly, but this was a bad +evening. Nothing seemed to be in its place, and Hester, whose duty it +was to get enough dry wood, had forgotten all about it, and by the time +a new bundle could be brought it was damp. Then the matches blew out, +and then, when at last the fire was alight, the wind scattered the +flames so that there was no heat under the pot for more than a moment +at a time. This often happens when you are on caravan excursions. +</P> + +<P> +Mary had arranged for a stew, but she soon discovered that there was no +chance of its being done for hours unless it could be moved into the +Slowcoach and cooked over the Beatrice stove; but when they got +Beatrice out, she was found to be empty, and no more oil was in the can. +</P> + +<P> +"Who is the Keeper of the Oil?" Mary asked severely. +</P> + +<P> +"I am," said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"Then where is it?" they asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I had it filled at Stratford," said Jack. "Why," he exclaimed, +"there's a hole in it! It's all run away! How ghastly! It will be all +over everything." +</P> + +<P> +And so it was; and the worst of it was that it had leaked into the +biscuits, too. Janet came to the rescue. "We must make it a tongue and +banana meal," she said. +</P> + +<P> +"I hate bananas," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Now, Horace," said Janet, "where's the tin-opener?" +</P> + +<P> +How is it that everything goes wrong at once? Horace had to hunt for +the tinopener for twenty minutes, and turn the whole place upside down +before he could find it, and then it was too late. +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile the rain was steadily falling, and Kink and Robert were busy +getting up the tents before the ground underneath was too wet. Robert +was the only happy one. A few difficulties seemed to him to make the +expedition more real. +</P> + +<P> +He came dripping into the Slowcoach and asked for his supper; but +Horace was still hunting for the tin-opener. +</P> + +<P> +"Never mind about it," said Robert. "I'll open the thing with the +hammer and a knife. But what you want, Horace, is system." +</P> + +<P> +"No; what I want is food," said Horace. "I'm dying." +</P> + +<P> +"So am I," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, eat a crust to go on with," said Janet. "There's the bread." +</P> + +<P> +"I hate crusts," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Surely crusts are better than dying of starvation," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Gregory, who was prepared to be thoroughly unpleasant. "No, +I'd much rather die. I think I shall go to bed." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Robert, "do. People who can't stand a little hunger are no +good in caravans." +</P> + +<P> +"Janet," said Gregory, "how can I go to bed with my boots on?" +</P> + +<P> +"Then take them off," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"There's a knot," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, you must wait," said Janet. "I can't leave what I'm doing." +</P> + +<P> +"I hate waiting," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +Robert, however, became suddenly very stern. He advanced on Gregory +with a knife in his hand, and, swooping on the boot, cut both laces. +"There," he said, "get into bed, and you must buy some more laces at +Cheltenham." +</P> + +<P> +"I hate Cheltenham," said Gregory. But he said no more; he saw that +Robert was cross. +</P> + +<P> +When, a little later, Janet took a plate of tongue over to his bunk, he +was fast asleep. The others had a dismal, grumpy meal, and they were +glad when the washing-up was done and it was bedtime. But no one had a +good night. The rain dropped from the trees on to the Slowcoach's roof +with loud thuds, and at midnight the thunder and lightning began, and +Janet got up and splashed out in the wet to the tent to ask Robert if +they ought not to move from under the trees. Robert had been lying +awake thinking the same thing, but Kink had gone off with Moses to the +nearest farm, and the Slowcoach was far too heavy to move without the +horse. Diogenes whimpered on his chain. If he could have spoken, he +would have said, like Gregory, "I hate thunder." +</P> + +<P> +"Perhaps it won't get very near us," said Robert. "We must chance it, +anyway." +</P> + +<P> +But neither he nor Janet had any sleep until it was nearly time to get +up, when the sun began to shine again, and the miseries of the evening +and night before were forgotten. +</P> + +<P> +Hester, however, had slept all through it, and had dreamed that ponies +were running away with her towards a country entirely peopled by black +spaniels and governed by a grey queen in top-boots. +</P> + +<P> +As for Gregory, his dream was that he was Lord Bruce. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap17"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 17 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE LOST BABY +</H3> + +<P> +They entered Cheltenham at about half-past eleven, and were having +lunch on the top of Leckhampton Hill, on the other side of it, by +half-past one. Robert had not allowed any stop in Cheltenham except for +shopping. "We don't want towns," he said, "except historic ones." +</P> + +<P> +"But this is historic," said Jack; "Jessop was at school here." +</P> + +<P> +The pull up Leckhampton Hill was very stiff, and they were all glad to +take lunch easily, and since Robert had arranged a short day—only +three or four miles more, to a very nice-looking spot on the other side +of Birdlip—they rested with clear consciences; and, as it happened, +rested again in the Birdlip Hotel, where they had tea in the garden +overlooking the Severn Valley on the top of just such a precipice as +Bredon. +</P> + +<P> +It was half-past three before they started again on their next five +miles, and they had done about three of them, and had just passed +Teddington, when Gregory, who was walking with Kink beside Moses, +suddenly dashed ahead towards a bundle which was lying in the middle of +the road. +</P> + +<P> +He bent down over it, and then began to shriek for the others to come +too. +</P> + +<P> +"What is it?" cried Jack, as they raced up. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a baby!" Gregory said, wild with excitement. "A real baby!" +</P> + +<P> +Janet, who had been behind, sprang forward as she heard these +remarkable words, and easily reached the bundle first. +</P> + +<P> +"So it is," she exclaimed, picking it tenderly up and opening the wraps +round its face. +</P> + +<P> +It was a swarthy mite, very tightly bound into its clothes. +</P> + +<P> +"What an extraordinary thing!" said Mary. "Fancy finding a baby on the +road!" +</P> + +<P> +"It has probably been abandoned," said Hester. "Very likely it is of +noble birth, and was stolen by gipsies and stained brown, and now they +are afraid of pursuit and have left it." +</P> + +<P> +"How could it be of noble birth?" Gregory asked. "Look how hideous it +is!" +</P> + +<P> +"Looks have nothing to do with high lineage," said Hester. "There have +been very ugly kings." +</P> + +<P> +"It isn't hideous," said Janet. "It's a perfect darling. But what are +we to do with it?" +</P> + +<P> +"If it's a boy," said Gregory, "let's keep it and make it into a +long-stop. We want one badly." (Gregory, as I have said, hated +fielding.) +</P> + +<P> +"Let's adopt it," said Hester. "Mother often says how she wishes we +were still babies." +</P> + +<P> +"Don't let's adopt it if it's a girl," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"It doesn't matter what a baby is," said Hester,—"whether it's a boy +or a girl. The important thing is that it's a baby. When it gets too +big, we can let it go." +</P> + +<P> +"I'm dreadfully afraid," said Janet, "that we shall have to try to find +out whose it is and give it back now." +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Mary, "we needn't try too hard, need we?" +</P> + +<P> +"How are you going to try, anyway?" Jack asked, with some scorn. "You +can't stop everyone you see and say, 'Have you lost a baby?' This old +man just coming along, for instance." +</P> + +<P> +"Wouldn't a good way," said Robert, "be to write a little placard: +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> + FOUND, A BABY.<BR> + Inquire Within.<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> +and stick it on the caravan?" +</P> + +<P> +They liked that idea, but Janet suggested that it would be best to ask +Kink first. +</P> + +<P> +"There's only one thing to do," said Kink, "and that is to hand it over +to the police at the next place we come to." +</P> + +<P> +"Police again!" said Horace. "You're always talking of the police." +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Kink, "that's what they're for. And if you think a moment +or two, you'll all see what a trouble a baby would be. We shall reach +Oxenton in a little while, and we can leave the baby there." +</P> + +<P> +But, as it happened, they had no need to, for there suddenly appeared +before them a caravan covered with baskets which was being urged +towards them by a young woman who tugged at the horse's head in a kind +of frenzy. As she drew nearer they could hear that she was wailing. +</P> + +<P> +"It must be her baby," said Janet, holding the bundle up; but the woman +did not see it, and Janet told Jack to run on quickly and meet her, and +tell her that they had the baby and it was not hurt. +</P> + +<P> +Jack did so, and the woman left the horse to be cared for by the man +and boy who walked behind, and ran to Janet, and seized the bundle from +her, and hugged it so tightly that the baby, for the first time, +uttered a little cry. +</P> + +<P> +"Where did you find it?" the gipsy woman asked; and Janet told her the +story. +</P> + +<P> +"It must have rolled out of the van while I was in front with the +horse," said the gipsy. "We didn't miss it. We've had to come back +three miles at least." +</P> + +<P> +By this time the two caravans had met, and the man was brought up by +the woman and told the story, and they all expressed their gratitude to +Janet for nursing the child so kindly. +</P> + +<P> +"Bless your pretty heart!" the gipsy woman said again and again, while +her husband asked if there was anything that they could do for her and +her party. +</P> + +<P> +"I don't think so," said Janet. "We liked to take care of it, of +course." +</P> + +<P> +The gipsy man asked a number of questions about the Slowcoach, and then +suggested that he should show them a good place to camp, and make their +fire for them, and he added: "I'll tell you what—you all come and have +supper with us. I'll bet you've talked about playing at gipsies often +enough; well, we'll get a real gipsy supper—a slap-up one. What's the +time?" +</P> + +<P> +He looked at the sun. "Nearly five. Well, we'll have supper at +half-past seven, and we'll do you proud. Will you come?" +</P> + +<P> +Janet considered. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course, Janet," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Why don't you say yes?" said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +Hester shrank a little towards the Slowcoach, and Janet went to talk to +Kink. +</P> + +<P> +She came back and thanked the gipsy, but said that they would not all +come, but the boys would gladly do so. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm sorry you won't be there," said the man. "But we'll give the young +gents a square meal—and tasty, too! Something to relish! What do you +say, now," he asked Gregory, "to a hedgehog? I don't expect you've ever +eaten that." +</P> + +<P> +"Hedgehog!" said Gregory. "No, but I've always wanted to." And, in +fact, he had been thinking of nothing else for the last five minutes. +</P> + +<P> +"You shall have it," said the man. "Baked or stewed?" +</P> + +<P> +"Which is best?" Gregory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Stewed," said the man. "But if you'd like it baked—Or, I'll tell you. +We'll have one of each. We got two to-day. This shall be a banquet." +</P> + +<P> +The gipsies really were very grateful folk. The boy got wood for them; +the man made their fire—much better than it had ever been made +before—and lit it without any paper, and with only one match. +</P> + +<P> +It was at last arranged that they should all share the same supper, +although the woman should sit with the girls and the boys with the man. +And so they did; and they found the hedgehog very good, especially the +baked one, which had been enclosed in a mould of clay and pushed right +into the middle of the fire. It tasted a little like pork, only more +delicate. +</P> + +<P> +"When you invited us to come to supper," Robert said, "you asked what +the time was, and then looked at the sun and said it was nearly five. +And it was—almost exactly. How do you do that?" +</P> + +<P> +"Ah," said the gipsy, "I can't explain. There it is. I know by the sun, +but I can't teach you, because you must live out of doors and never +have a clock, or it's no good." +</P> + +<P> +"And can you tell it when there's no sun?" Robert asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Pretty well," said the man. +</P> + +<P> +"How lucky you are!" said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, I don't know," said the man. "What about rain? When it's raining +hard, and we're huddling in the van and can't get any dry sticks for +the fire, and our feet are soaked, what are you doing? Why, you're all +snug in your houses, with a real roof over you." +</P> + +<P> +"I'd much rather live in a caravan than a house," said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +The man laughed. "You're a young gent out for a spree," he said. "You +don't count. You wonder at me," he continued, "being able to tell the +time by the skies. But I dare say there's one, at any rate, of you who +can find a train in that thing they call Bradshaw, isn't there?" +</P> + +<P> +"I can," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, there you are," said the gipsy. "What's luck? Nothing. +Everyone's got a little. No one's got much." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, but the millionaires?" said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"Millionaires!" said the gipsy. "Why, you don't think they're lucky, do +you?" +</P> + +<P> +"I always have done so," said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"Go on!" said the gipsy. "Why, we're luckier than what they are. We've +got enough to eat and drink,—and no one wants more,—and along with it +no rent and taxes, no servants, no tall hats, no offices, no +motor-cars, no fear of thieves. Millionaires have no rest at all. No +sitting under a tree by the fire smoking a pipe." +</P> + +<P> +"And no hedgehogs," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"No—no hedgehogs. Nothing but butcher's meat that costs its weight in +gold. Take my advice, young gents," said the gipsy, "and never envy +anybody." +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile the others were very happy by the Slowcoach fire. The gipsy +woman, hugging her baby, kept as close to Janet as if she were a +spaniel. Their name was Lee, she said, and they made baskets. They +lived at Reading in the winter and were on the road all the rest of the +year. The young boy was her brother. His name was Keziah. Her husband's +name was Jasper. The baby's was Rhoda. +</P> + +<P> +Hester was very anxious to ask questions about kidnapping, but she did +not quite like to, and was, in fact, silent. +</P> + +<P> +The gipsy woman noticed it after a while, and remarked upon it. "That +little dark one there," she said; "why doesn't she speak?" +</P> + +<P> +Janet said something about Hester being naturally quiet and thoughtful. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said the woman, "I know what it is: she's frightened of me. +She's heard stories about the gipsies stealing children and staining +their faces with walnut juice; haven't you, dearie?" +</P> + +<P> +Hester admitted it. +</P> + +<P> +"There," said the woman, laughing triumphantly. "But don't be +frightened, dearie," she added. "That's only stories. And even if it +ever did happen, it couldn't again, what with railway trains and +telegraphs and telephones and motor-cars and newspapers. How could we +help being found out? Why," she continued, "so far from stealing +children, there was a boy running away from school once who offered us +a pound to let him join our caravan and stain his face and go with us +to Bristol, where he could get on to a ship as a stowaway, as he called +it; but Jasper wouldn't let him. I wanted to; but Jasper was dead +against it. 'No,' he said, 'gipsies have a bad enough time as it is, +without getting into trouble helping boys to run away from school.' +That shows what we are, dearie," she added to Hester, with a smile. +</P> + +<P> +"And don't you ever tell fortunes?" Hester asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I won't say I've never done that," the gypsy said. +</P> + +<P> +"Won't you tell mine?" Hester asked. "I've got a sixpence." +</P> + +<P> +"Just cross my hand with it," said the woman, "but don't give it to me. +I couldn't take money from any of you." +</P> + +<P> +So Hester, with her heart beating very fast, crossed the gipsy's hand +with the sixpence, and the gipsy held both hers and peered at them very +hard while Janet nursed the baby. +</P> + +<P> +"This," said the gipsy at last, "is a very remarkable hand. I see +stories and people reading them. I see a dark gentleman and a gentleman +of middling colour." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Hester. "Can't you tell me anything more about them?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said the gipsy, "I can't, because they are only little boys +just now. But I see a beautiful wedding. White satin. Flowers. +Bridesmaids." +</P> + +<P> +The gipsy stopped, and Hester drew her hand back. It was terribly +romantic and exciting. +</P> + +<P> +Before the woman said good night and went to her caravan, Hester took +her sixpence to Kink and asked him to bore a hole in it. And then she +threaded it on a piece of string and tied it round the baby's neck. +</P> + +<P> +The gipsy woman was very grateful. "A beautiful wedding," she said +again. "Such flowers! Music, too." +</P> + +<P> +"Wasn't it wonderful?" Hester said to Janet before they went to sleep. +</P> + +<P> +"What?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"The gipsy knowing I was fond of writing." +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Janet, "it wasn't wonderful at all. There was a great ink +stain on your finger." +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap18"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 18 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE OLD IRISHWOMAN +</H3> + +<P> +When they awoke the next morning the gipsies had gone—nothing remained +of them but the burnt circle on the ground which any encampment makes +and a little rubbish; but at the mouth of the boys' tent lay a bundle +of sticks and two rabbits. +</P> + +<P> +Kink looked at the rabbits with a narrow eye. "Better hurry up and get +them eaten," he said, "or one of those policemen that Master Campbell +is so fond of may be asking awkward questions. And it wouldn't be a bad +thing," Kink added, "to have a good look round and see if there's +anything missing." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Kink," said Janet, "how horrid you are to be so suspicious! And +after all their gratitude, too!" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Kink; "but gipsies is gipsies. They were gipsies before +they were grateful, and I reckon they'll be gipsies after." +</P> + +<P> +But in spite of his examination he found no signs of any theft. +</P> + +<P> +They were away soon after breakfast, which seemed a little flat at +first after the excitement of last night. But they soon lost that +feeling in hunger. It was a very windy day, with showers now and then; +but it was bracing too, especially on this very high road, hundreds of +feet above the sea-level. +</P> + +<P> +Robert pointed out how straight it was, and told them it was made by +the Romans eighteen hundred years ago, and it ran right through +Cirencester (which they called Corinium) to Speen (which they called +Spinae). Its name was then Ermin Street. And it amused the children to +imagine they too were Romans clanking along this fine highway. +</P> + +<P> +It was after lunch that they came upon an old woman—sitting beside the +road just beyond Tredington. Long before they reached her they heard +her moaning and groaning. +</P> + +<P> +"What is it?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +The old woman moaned and groaned. +</P> + +<P> +"Are you ill?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +The old woman groaned and moaned. +</P> + +<P> +"Kinky," said Janet, "come and see if we can help her." +</P> + +<P> +Kink murmured to himself and came to her. +</P> + +<P> +"What's up, missis?" he asked. +</P> + +<P> +"It's my poor heart," said the old woman with an Irish brogue. "I'm +very queer. It's near death I am. For the love of Heaven give me a ride +in the beautiful caravan." +</P> + +<P> +"Where do you want to go?" Kink growled at her. +</P> + +<P> +"To Alverminster," she said. "To see my daughter. She lives there. +She's been married these five years to a carpenter, and she's just had +another baby, bless it's wee face! But me poor heart's that bad I can't +go another step." +</P> + +<P> +Kink drew Janet aside. "She's an old humbug," he said, "and she smells +of gin. Better let her be." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Kinky," said Janet, "how can we! The poor old thing, and her +daughter waiting to see her!" +</P> + +<P> +"Daughter!" Kink snorted. "She's got no daughter. She's trying it on." +</P> + +<P> +"How horrid you are!" Janet said. "I mean to give her a lift, anyway." +</P> + +<P> +"It's against my advice," said Kink. "Anyway, promise me you won't give +her any money." +</P> + +<P> +"Very well," said Janet, and she invited the old woman to sit on a +chair at the back of the caravan. +</P> + +<P> +"The saints protect you for your kindness!" said the old woman, getting +to her feet and making her way up the steps with more ease than Janet +had dared to expect. "The saints protect you all—all except that +suspicious ould gossoon wid the whip," she added, glowering at Kink, +who was by no means backward in glowering at her in reply. +</P> + +<P> +"If you had such a thing as a drop of spirits," said the old woman to +Janet, who had taken a seat beside her, "I should be all right. The +doctor says that there's nothing like a little stimulant for such +flutterings and spasms as worry me." +</P> + +<P> +"I'm afraid we haven't," said Janet; "but I could make you a cup of +tea." +</P> + +<P> +"There's a darlin'," said the old woman. "It's not so helpful as +spirits, but there's comfort in it too." +</P> + +<P> +Her sharp little eyes followed Janet as she moved about and brought +together all the tea requisites. +</P> + +<P> +"You're a handy young lady," she said, "and may Heaven send you a fine +husband when the time comes! Ah, it's myself as a girl you remind me +of, with your quick, pretty ways." +</P> + +<P> +"Where did you live when you were a girl?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"In a little village called Kilbeggy," said the old woman. "My father +was a farmer there until the trouble came upon him. But it's little +enough happiness we had after that, and niver a piece of meat passed +our lips for years. Nothing but potatoes and bread. And you're eating +meat twice a day, I'm thinking, all of you. Ah, it's a strange world, +and a very gay one when you're rich. I was rich once, me darlin'." +</P> + +<P> +"Were you?" Janet asked in surprise. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said the old woman, "I was rich once. Me husband was a +licensed victualler in Harrow, and we kept our own wagonette. Many's +the time I've driven it meself into London, to a stable in the Edgeware +Road, where I left it to do me shopping. It was an elegant carriage, +and a white horse not so unlike your own, only smaller." +</P> + +<P> +Janet handed her the tea. +</P> + +<P> +"Thank you, me darlin'," said the old woman. "I'm feeling better +already. That's a beautiful locket you're wearing—it is the very image +of one that belonged to me poor little Clara that died." +</P> + +<P> +The old woman began to cry. Janet was greatly distressed. "I can't help +it," said the old woman. "Me poor little Clara! I kept it for years and +years, and then it was taken from me by my landlady's son, a +good-for-nothing blackguard, in lodgings off the Pentonville Road." She +sobbed afresh. "I've never been happy since," she said. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh," Janet exclaimed, "do take this. I don't want it, I'm sure, if it +would make you happy." +</P> + +<P> +"But it's robbing you of it I am," said the old woman, as her hand +closed on it. +</P> + +<P> +"I'd much rather you had it," Janet replied. +</P> + +<P> +"Heaven bless your kind heart!" said the old woman. +</P> + +<P> +They jogged on, and she continued to look around her and to ask +questions. She asked all about Janet's home and parents. +</P> + +<P> +"Could you," she said at last, "lend me a shilling, my dear? It's to +buy the little baby some mittens, his poor hands get that cold. I don't +want you to give it, but couldn't you lend it me only for to-day? I'll +post you a beautiful postal order to-night, which my daughter's husband +will get for me, or a beautiful row of stamps, if you'll give me the +address of the grand house you'll be staying in at Stratford." +</P> + +<P> +But Janet was firm; she had promised Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"Not for the poor little mite's cold hands?" said the old woman. +</P> + +<P> +It was very hard, but Janet had to say no. +</P> + +<P> +The old woman said no more for some time. Then suddenly, "Did you ever +see the late King, God bless him?" she asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Janet, "I saw him once. It was at the opening of +Parliament." +</P> + +<P> +"Then you can tell me," said the old woman, "something I want to know; +for I was arguing it with my daughter's husband the last time I was +here, and I want to convince him. He says—my daughter's husband, that +is—that the King had thick hair on the top of his head, God bless him! +and I say he hadn't. What I say is, he'd got all the hair he needed. So +if you ever saw him, you could tell me." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no, I can't," Janet said. "When I saw him he was in a carriage." +</P> + +<P> +"What a pity!" said the old woman. "But haven't you a portrait of him +anywhere?" +</P> + +<P> +"No, I'm sure we haven't," said Janet. "Perhaps we ought to have! It +would be more loyal, wouldn't it?" +</P> + +<P> +"Never mind," said the old woman; "only it would put my mind at rest." +And then suddenly she began to laugh. "Why," she said, "how silly we +are! Of course you've got portraits of him—lashin's of them, darlin'." +</P> + +<P> +"Where?" Janet exclaimed. +</P> + +<P> +"In your purse," said the old woman. "On the blessed money. On the +shillings and sixpences, my dear." +</P> + +<P> +"Of course," said Janet, laughing too; and she drew out her purse and +looked at the money it contained. There was half a sovereign and half a +crown and some smaller coins; but none were new ones: all were of +Victoria's reign. +</P> + +<P> +"What a pity!" said the old woman again—"perhaps one of your brothers +or sisters has some more. Not the old blackguard driving, of course." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Janet; "I'll see;" and descended the steps, and soon after +returned with an Edward shilling. +</P> + +<P> +The old woman took it and examined head. "I was right," she said, "God +bless him! He was as thin on the top as my own poor father was, rest +his soul! Well, dear, and now I'll say good-bye," she added soon after, +as she rose to her feet and gave the shilling back. "If you'll make +that spalpeen stop, I'll get down, for me daughter's cottage is just +over there, across fields. Thank you very kindly for the tea and your +sweet company. Good-bye, good bye," she called, "and the saints protect +you all!" and she hobbled off through a gate in the hedge. +</P> + +<P> +At Alverminster Gregory insisted upon buying some acid-drops, and went +to Janet for a penny. But when she came to feel for her purse it was +not to be found. She hunted everywhere in the caravan, but in vain. +</P> + +<P> +"When did you have it last?" Kink asked. "You haven't bought anything +to-day." +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Janet, "but I had it out when the old Irishwoman was there." +</P> + +<P> +"I guessed she'd get some money out of you," said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Kink!" said Janet; "she didn't. And after I had promised, too! All +she wanted to see was King Edward's head on a coin." +</P> + +<P> +"What for?" Kink asked. +</P> + +<P> +"To see if he was bald on the top or not," said Janet. "She had had an +argument with her daughter's husband about it. Which just proves that +you were wrong in thinking she had no daughter." +</P> + +<P> +Kink smiled an annoying smile. "Well," he said, "what then?" +</P> + +<P> +"We found a coin," said Janet, "and found that the King was bald on the +top. That's all." +</P> + +<P> +"And shortly afterwards she got out?" Kink asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, soon afterwards." +</P> + +<P> +Kink laughed very heartily. "Well," he said, "I could see she was an +old fraud, but I didn't think she would steal anything, or I wouldn't +have let her in the caravan at all." +</P> + +<P> +"Steal!" Janet cried. "Why, do you think she stole it? It's very horrid +and unjust of you." +</P> + +<P> +"Then where is it?" Kink asked. "That stuff about the King's head was a +trick. It's a clear case. We must go to the constable's house." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said Janet, "we won't. She was a poor old thing, and her +heart was bad, and she was very unhappy, and I don't mind about the +money." +</P> + +<P> +"She's an old vagabond," said Kink, "and her heart's as sound as mine. +She wants locking up." +</P> + +<P> +"I won't have it," said Janet again. "If she did steal it, it was very +wrong; but she has had very bad luck. Don't let's think any more about +it, but pay for the sweets and get on." +</P> + +<P> +Poor Janet! no wonder she wanted the matter dropped, for there was her +locket to be explained if any of the others noticed it and asked +questions. She was very silent for some time, and walked alone, +thinking hard. This was her first experience of theft, and it hurt her. +</P> + +<P> +The children, as it happened, never did notice the absence of the +locket, but they kept the memory of the old woman very green. Nothing +after that could be missed without some reference to her. +</P> + +<P> +"Where's the corkscrew?" Robert would say. "I suppose Kathleen +Mavourneen's got it." +</P> + +<P> +"It's no use," Jack would remark, "I can't find the salt. Erin go +bragh!" +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap19"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 19 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE LETTERS TO X. +</H3> + +<P> +They reached Cirencester at five o'clock, and at once turned to the +left to the Fairford road, intending to camp just outside the town till +Monday; and it was here that Gregory had his first rebuff in his +capacity as Requester of Camping Grounds. He brought it upon himself by +refusing to let Mary accompany him, and, indeed, refusing advice +altogether. +</P> + +<P> +He marched off to the farmhouse, which could be seen in the distance +across the meadows, full of assurance; but misfortunes began at once. +No sooner was he well in the first meadow than a flock of geese +suddenly appeared from nowhere and approached him. There is something +very horrid about the approach of a flock of geese. They are not really +dangerous, but they lower their heads and hiss and come on so steadily +and are so impossible to deal with. A dog can be hit with a stick; but +you can't hit a goose. There were no stones to throw, and the stupid, +angry birds came every moment nearer. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory did not wish to go back, and did not want to appear frightened +in the eyes of the others, who were very likely watching, and he +therefore had nothing to do but run as fast as he could for the farther +gate and scramble over it. +</P> + +<P> +Here he paused for a moment, to be in no way reassured by the sight, +much too near the path, of a number of bullocks. In the ordinary way +Gregory did not mind bullocks—did not, in fact, think about them—but +just now he was flustered and rather nervous. However, he walked +steadily forward and got safely past the first. Then, with his face +kept straight and brave, but his eye anxiously peering through the back +of his head to see what the first was doing, he approached the second +and got past that all right. But the third gave him a wild and, as it +seemed, furious look, and this turned him cold; and then he was +perfectly certain that he could feel the others close behind him +breathing hot on his neck, and once again he broke into a terrified +run, and so gained the next gate, over which he may be said to have +fallen rather than climbed. +</P> + +<P> +On the other and safe side he paused again, and again looked for the +enemy. Seeing none, he once more started forward. +</P> + +<P> +This was the last meadow, and the farm was at the end of it, and +Gregory was quite close to the farm, when suddenly there appeared, +right in his path, with a challenging tail in air, a large dog—a +collie. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory stopped and the collie stopped, and the two looked at each +other carefully. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory remembered all that he had ever heard about collies being +treacherous and fierce. +</P> + +<P> +He advanced a step; the collie did not move. +</P> + +<P> +He advanced another step; and then, to his horror, the collie began to +advance too, lifting his feet high and dangerously. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory forced himself to say, "Good dog!" but the collie still +advanced. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory said, "Poor fellow, then!" and the collie at once did something +perfectly awful: he growled. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory had no courage left. His tongue and lips refused to obey him. +He felt his knees turning to water. +</P> + +<P> +How he wished he had let Mary come too! Dogs always liked her. Why was +it that dogs liked some people and not others? he asked himself. +Ridiculous! No one liked dogs better than he, if this ass of a collie +only knew it. +</P> + +<P> +Meanwhile, the collie, still growling, drew nearer, and Gregory felt +himself pricking all over. Where would it bite him first? he wondered. +</P> + +<P> +But just as he had given up all hope, a voice called out sharply, +"Caesar, come here!" and the collie turned and ran to where a tall, +red-faced man was standing. +</P> + +<P> +"What do you want?" the man then said to Gregory, with equal sharpness. +"You're trespassing." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory was frankly crying now—with relief; but he pulled himself +together and said he wanted to see the farmer. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm the farmer," said the man. "What is it?" +</P> + +<P> +Gregory explained what he had come for. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the farmer, "not on my land." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory said that other farmers had said yes. +</P> + +<P> +"I don't care," said the farmer, "I say NO." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory longed to ask if there was another way back, but he had not the +courage, and he turned and made again for the gate of the bullock +meadow. +</P> + +<P> +The bullocks were still near the path, so he climbed softly over the +gate, as he feared they might hear him, and crept round by the hedge to +the next gate without attracting any notice. +</P> + +<P> +Had he only known, he might have gone safely by the path, for one +bullock was saying to another: "There's that little duffer going all +that long way out of his course just for fear of us. What do you say to +trotting down to the gate and giving him another scare?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the other. "It's not worth while. He's very small, too, and +these horns, you know—they are a bit startling. Besides, there are all +those flies by the gate." +</P> + +<P> +"True," said the other; "but it makes me smile, all the same." +</P> + +<P> +So Gregory got out safely, and, performing the same manoeuvre with the +geese, he reached the caravan and Janet's arms without further +misfortune. +</P> + +<P> +The others were of course disappointed at the result of his mission, +and walked on another half-mile, much farther from Cirencester than +they had wished to be, to the next farm. +</P> + +<P> +There Mary and Hester made the request, which was at once granted; and +the farmer and his wife were so much interested that they both walked +down to the Slowcoach and examined it, and the farmer advised its being +taken into a yard where there was a great empty barn and backed against +that; so that they had the whole of the barn as a kind of anteroom, and +a most enchanting smell of hay everywhere. +</P> + +<P> +"All I ask," he said, "is that you don't burn the place down with your +cooking." +</P> + +<P> +The pot was then filled and placed on the fire. Kink skinned the +rabbits and Janet and Mary put them in, while Jack and Robert and +Horace walked into Cirencester to buy eatables and picture postcards +and send off the telegram. +</P> + +<P> +That evening after supper Janet suggested that it might be the best +opportunity they would have to write the letters to X. of which they +had often talked; so they made themselves comfortable in the caravan +and on the barn floor, and each wrote something, not after the style of +the Snarker's game at Oxford, but quite separately. +</P> + +<P> +Janet wrote: +</P> + +<BR> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"Saturday Evening, July 8, +<BR> +"In a Barn near Cirencester. +<BR><BR> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"We thank you very much for the caravan, which is much the most +beautiful present that anyone can ever have had. We have now been in it +nearly ten days, and we like it more every day. We have called it the +Slowcoach. The party is seven, and Kink, who drives. We have with us +Mary and Jack Rotheram and Horace Campbell; but whether you know who +they are or not, of course I don't know. I hope some day you will tell +us who you are. +<BR><BR> +"I am, <BR> + "Yours sincerely,<BR> + JANET AVORY. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Mary Rotheram wrote: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR MR. X. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Then she crossed out the "Mr." because, as she said, it might be a +lady, and began again: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"I am not one of the Avories, and the caravan was therefore not given +to me, but my brother and I have been so happy in it that I want to say +thank you for it quite as if I were an Avory all the time. We live near +them at Chiswick, you know. It has been a supreme holiday, with hardly +any rain and no real troubles, although even the strongest people must +sometimes get a little tired of walking on dusty roads and having to +wait for meals. We each have a special duty, and I am the head cook, +but Janet is really better at it than I am. Our only real +disappointment is that caravaning makes you so tired that there is no +chance of cricket, for we brought cricket things with us, but have +never been able to use them. We might have done so at Salford, perhaps, +but the river was so very tempting that we rowed about instead. +<BR><BR> +"Yours sincerely and gratefully, +<BR> +MARY ROTHERAM. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Jack Rotheram wrote: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"My sister Mary has said who I am, but she has not explained how it is +I am here. It is because my brother William and I tossed up for it; He +called 'Heads,' and it was tails, so I won at once. And then he said +'Threes,' which means the best out of three, and this time he called +'Tails' and it was heads, so that settled the thing absolutely. He was, +of course, most frightfully sick about it, but the next time the +Avories go out in the caravan they are going to ask him and not me, +which will put the thing right. It is a ripping caravan, and I am sure +I thank you very much, although it's not mine. +<BR><BR> +"Yours truly, +<BR> +"JOHN ILFORD ROTHERAM. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Robert, who was not a sprightly writer, merely described the course +they had followed, which we all know. The only news he had to give was +at the end: "So far, up to the time of writing, my pedometer registers +fifty-six miles; which is, of course, only what I have walked, and not +what we have done, for we all take turns to ride for fear of getting +too tired and being seedy. The caravan has done altogether one hundred +and forty miles, and since we were in it ninety miles exactly." +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Horace, after great difficulty, wrote: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"I am having a top-hole holiday in the caravan you gave the Avories. I +am the Keeper of the Tin-opener. +<BR><BR> +"Yours truly, +<BR> +HORACE CAMPBELL. +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Hester wrote: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"I have long wanted to write to you and tell you that we adore the +Slowcoach, which is the name we have given your caravan, and think you +were awfully clever to think of it and to make it so complete. +<BR><BR> +We have not had to buy anything, and the only thing you forgot was the +license; but Uncle Christopher remembered. I love walking behind the +Slowcoach and seeing the world pass by. But the evenings are the most +alluring, and I like to wake up at night and hear the birds and animals +just outside the window, although on the first night I was frightened. +We had one evening with real gipsies, but Janet would not allow me to +go inside their caravan, because of fleas and things. But I could see +through the door that it was not so attractive as the Slowcoach. I wish +this journey would never end, but I fear it has to do so on Tuesday, +which draws nearer every moment. +<BR><BR> +"I am, +<BR><BR> +"Your grateful and admiring friend, +<BR> +HESTER MARGARET AVORY. +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"P.S.—I hope we shall never know who you are, because anonymous things +are so much more exciting. +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"P.S. 2.—We have met many motors, and they are always coming up behind +us and making us jump and blinding us with dust, but we have never +envied them." +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Gregory wrote painfully: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +DEAR X., +<BR><BR> +"Thank you most awfully for the Slowcoach. It is very good and +suitable. I am the Keeper of the Corkscrew, and also the Requester of +Camping-Grounds. +<BR><BR> +"Your affectionate +<BR> +GREGORY BRUCE AVORY. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap20"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 20 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE LINE OF POETRY +</H3> + +<P> +ON the next morning, which was Sunday, Jack hurried through his +dressing and washing at a great pace and instantly disappeared. The +others were just beginning breakfast when he came rushing up in a state +of wild excitement, calling, "Kink! Kink!" +</P> + +<P> +"What is it?" said that leisurely man. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a rabbit!" cried Jack. "I've caught it, and I don't know how to +kill it." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Jack," said Mary, running up, "don't kill it! Why should it be +killed?" +</P> + +<P> +"For supper, of course," said Jack. "Come on, Kink! Quick, or it will +get away!" +</P> + +<P> +They all left their breakfast and followed Jack, and when they came up +to him he was kneeling over a kicking object. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Kink," he said, "do hold it and kill it! How do you do it? The +gipsy boy didn't show me properly." +</P> + +<P> +"The gipsy boy?" said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, he gave me a wire. See, it's round its neck. That's how I caught +him. Do kill him, Kink!" +</P> + +<P> +"Please don't do anything of the kind," said Janet. "We don't want to +eat rabbits we catch like that." +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Hester, "please don't kill it. Please let it go." +</P> + +<P> +"What mollycoddles you are!" said Jack. "How do you suppose rabbits are +killed, anyway? You eat them all right when they're cooked." +</P> + +<P> +"I couldn't eat a rabbit that I had seen struggling alive," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Mary. "Oh, Jack, please let him go! You've caught him, and +that's the great thing; and now be merciful." +</P> + +<P> +Kink still held the struggling creature. +</P> + +<P> +"I vote he's let loose again," said Robert. "I don't want any of him." +</P> + +<P> +"No, and I'm sure I don't," said Gregory; "but wouldn't it be fun to +keep him in a hutch?" +</P> + +<P> +"Wild rabbits are no good in hutches," said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +Jack was very sullen. "It's awful rot," he said. "You all ought to be +vegetarians if you talk like that. But we'll let him go," and he +loosened the wire and the rabbit dashed away. +</P> + +<P> +"A nice return to the gipsy for his kindness," Jack muttered. +</P> + +<P> +Kink watched the rabbit till it was out of sight. "Whose rabbit do you +suppose that was?" he asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Mine," said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"What about the farmer?" said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"A nice return for a night's lodging—poaching his rabbits." +</P> + +<P> +"Poaching!" cried Horace. "Is that poaching? Is Jack a poacher? Oh, how +splendid! Jack's a poacher! Jack's a poacher! I wish I was." +</P> + +<P> +"I'd never thought of it as poaching," said Jack, who was not a little +proud of his new character. +</P> + +<P> +"When did you set the wire?" Horace asked him. +</P> + +<P> +"Late last night," said Jack. "After you had turned in." +</P> + +<P> +"Wasn't it pitch dark?" Horace asked. +</P> + +<P> +"There was a moon," said Jack, feeling twice his ordinary size. +</P> + +<P> +"But what did you do?" Horace asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," said Jack, "I had noticed some rabbits in that field on our way +back from Cirencester, so I just crept off in the dark and found a +hole, and took a strong stick and drove that into the ground, and then +fixed the wire to it with the noose open, like this, so that the rabbit +would run right into it when it came out. And it did! Poaching's +frightfully simple." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Horace, "but it wants courage." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said Jack lightly. "Of course one mustn't be a fool or a +coward." +</P> + +<P> +It was arranged that Janet and Jack and Robert and Hester should go to +church, and Mary and the others stay behind to cook. The boys walked, +but Janet and Hester were driven in by the farmer in his chaise. Janet +had a rather uncomfortable moment at the beginning of the sermon, for +the text was taken from Matthew xxii, where the piece of money is +produced, and the question asked, "Whose is this image and +superscription?" Of course they all thought simultaneously of the old +Irishwoman, and gave Janet a quick glance. She was very glad that Kink +(who was a Dissenter) was not with them to fix his old laughing eye +upon her. +</P> + +<P> +Mary had worked very hard over the Sunday dinner, and a great surprise +was waiting for the four church-goers—nothing less than a beefsteak +pudding with the most perfect soft crust and heaps of juice; and +afterwards pancakes. The farmer's wife sent down some strawberries and +cream, so that it was a real feast. The only one of them that was not +hungry was Mary, who was too hot and tired of cooking to be able to eat +much. +</P> + +<P> +In spite of this huge and momentous dinner, all the children went out +on Sunday afternoon to explore the neighbourhood, except Hester, who +said she had something very important to do and begged to be allowed to +remain alone in the Slowcoach. Kink said that he would stay there, too. +</P> + +<P> +On the other side of Cirencester is a very beautiful park, with a broad +avenue through it from the gates right in the town itself. The farmer's +wife had told them of its attractions, and also of a ruined house known +as Alfred's Hall, and a point called the Seven Ways where seven green +avenues met, and a canal that ran through a tunnel, and, all within the +possibilities of good walkers, the source of the Thames itself. "And," +said she, "after you have seen that—the tiny spring which makes that +wonderful river that runs right through London—oh, I've been to London +in my time!—you can come back to Cirencester by the Fosse Way—the +Roman road to Bath." They could not, of course, see all these things, +but they went to the ruined house, which was very romantic and exactly +the place for Hester had she only been with them; and they roamed about +the park, which was very vast and wonderful. +</P> + +<P> +They had a little adventure, too, for as they were walking along, on +the way back—coming back, of course, by a different way, for Robert +could not bear the thought of not doing so—Mary chanced to say, with +reference to the plans for the future which Robert was describing: +</P> + +<P> + "To-morrow to fresh fields and pastures new,"<BR> +</P> + +<P> +that being her idea of the last line of Milton's "Lycidas," which they +had all learned quite recently. +</P> + +<P> +"Not 'fresh fields,'" Janet corrected, "'fresh woods.'" +</P> + +<P> +"'Fields,'" said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"'Woods,'" said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm sure it's 'fields,'" said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"But it's silly," said Janet, "to say 'fresh fields and pastures new,' +because they mean the same thing. 'Fresh woods' would mean something +different." +</P> + +<P> +"I can't help it," said Mary; "that's Milton's affair. 'Fresh fields.'" +</P> + +<P> +Janet called to Robert. "Is it 'fresh fields and pastures new,' or +'fresh woods and pastures new'?" she asked him. +</P> + +<P> +"'Fresh fields,'" he said. +</P> + +<P> +Janet asked Jack. "I don't know," he said, "but 'fresh woods' sounds +more sensible." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, dear," said Janet, "I wish we had a Milton!" +</P> + +<P> +"Well, we haven't," said Robert, "and you're not likely to find one at +Cirencester to-day, unless, of course, the vicar has one." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," said Janet, "of course—the vicar. He's certain to have one." +</P> + +<P> +"But who'll ask him?" said Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"Janet will," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, it's your affair," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Not more than Mary's," said Janet. "Mary, will you ask him?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Mary, "I don't think I could. Not the vicar. I might be +willing to ask the curate." +</P> + +<P> +"What a ripping idea!" said Jack. "Of course the curate would be much +easier. We'll ask where he lives." +</P> + +<P> +They did so at a small tobacconist's that was open, and found that the +curate had rooms at Myrtle Villa, quite close by. +</P> + +<P> +They therefore marched towards Myrtle Villa, but first arranged to draw +lots to see who should ring the bell and make the inquiry. They tore up +paper of different sizes, and it was agreed that the holders of the +longest and the shortest pieces should go—the longest to put the +question, the shortest to ring and lend support. The result was that +Mary drew the longest and Gregory the smallest. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory was furious. "I don't even know what it's all about," he +complained. +</P> + +<P> +They told him. +</P> + +<P> +"How rotten!" he said. "What's it matter?" +</P> + +<P> +Mary, however, led him off to the house, and he rang the bell with +vigour. +</P> + +<P> +A smiling girl opened the door and asked what they wanted. +</P> + +<P> +"Is the curate at home?" Mary asked. +</P> + +<P> +The girl said that he was. +</P> + +<P> +"Will you ask him if he will speak to us for a moment?" said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"What about?" asked the girl. "He has a friend with him." +</P> + +<P> +"I don't think you'd understand if we told you," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"I must know what it's about," said the girl. "He doesn't like to be +disturbed on Sunday afternoons." +</P> + +<P> +"Has he got a lot of books—poetry books?" Gregory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said the girl, "heaps." +</P> + +<P> +"Then it's about Milton," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"Milton the baker!" exclaimed the girl. "He's not dead, is he?" +</P> + +<P> +"Milton the poet," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm all in a maze," said the girl. "I don't know what you're talking +about. But I suppose I'd better tell him." +</P> + +<P> +The girl left them on the mat and knocked at a door just inside. +</P> + +<P> +"Come in," said a man's voice. +</P> + +<P> +"Please, sir," said the girl, "there are two children asking about +someone named Milton." +</P> + +<P> +The owner of the voice laughed. "Are they?" he said. "Well, they've +come to the right shop." And then the door opened wider and a tall and +handsome young man came out, dressed in a cricket blazer over a +clergyman's waistcoat and collar, and smoking a large pipe. +</P> + +<P> +"What's all this about Milton?" he said cheerily. "What Milton? Not the +poet?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I say, this is too good," said the young clergyman. "Vernon," he +called out, "come here and see a deputation from Milton." +</P> + +<P> +Another young man joined him, equally pleasant looking, and they all +shook hands. +</P> + +<P> +"Come inside," said the young clergyman. +</P> + +<P> +"There are four others waiting in the road," said Gregory. "Then fetch +them in too," said the young clergyman. And Janet and Robert and Jack +and Horace were brought in. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said the young clergyman, "have some tea." And he rang the bell +and ordered enough tea for eight. +</P> + +<P> +When the girl had gone, he asked for full particulars, and then gave +his verdict. +</P> + +<P> +"'Fresh woods and pastures new.'" +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, rubbish!" said Vernon. "I've always learned 'fresh fields and +pastures new.'" +</P> + +<P> +"That's what I say," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"And so do I," said Robert and Horace. +</P> + +<P> +"I think YOU'RE right," said Janet to the young clergyman. +</P> + +<P> +"Well," he said, "I'll look it up." And he began to hunt for Milton on +his shelves. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, not yet!" said Vernon. "Let's have some fun first. Let's see who +are the 'fielders' and who are the 'wooders.' All 'fielders' this way." +</P> + +<P> +Mary, Robert, and Horace ranged themselves beside him, leaving Janet +and Jack with the young clergyman, whom Vernon called Rod. +</P> + +<P> +Gregory looked at both sides, and did not move. +</P> + +<P> +"Haven't you any views about it?" asked Vernon. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Gregory; "I never heard the thing before. What does it +matter?" +</P> + +<P> +"Very well, then," said Rod; "here's the tea. You pour it out for us. I +like three lumps of sugar in mine. Now," he continued, "the rout of the +'fielders' is about to begin. Of course it's 'woods.' Why, I can see +the word now in Milton's own handwriting, as I used to see it in the +Library at Trinity." +</P> + +<P> +"I'm so sure it's 'fields,'" said Vernon, "that I declare myself +willing to go without cake for tea if it isn't." +</P> + +<P> +"Will you put half a crown in the plate next Sunday if it's 'woods'?" +said Rod. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I say, that's a bit stiff," said Vernon. "Half a crown?" +</P> + +<P> +"Very well, then," said Rod, "two bob. Will you put two bob in the +plate next Sunday if it's 'woods'?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, I will," said Vernon. "But if it's 'fields,' what will you do? +You mayn't take a shilling out?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Rod; "if it's 'fields' I'll eat my best hat." +</P> + +<P> +"I hope it's fields,'" said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Horrid little boy!" said Rod. "But now we'll see." +</P> + +<P> +He opened Milton slowly, and turned over the pages of "Lycidas." "Ha! +ha!" he said; "no cake for Charles Vernon, Esquire, and two bob for +Mother Church. And my best hat saved. Listen: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + "'At last he rose and twitch'd his mantle blue:<BR> + To-morrow to fresh woods, and pastures new.'"<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"No cake!" groaned Vernon. "Repulsive children!" he continued +tragically. "Why did you knock at this unhappy door and ask your +foolish question here? Are there no other houses in Cirencester? No +cake! No cake!" +</P> + +<P> +They screamed with laughter. +</P> + +<P> +"I like them," said Rod. "They're nice children. I hope they'll come +again. And now for a large tea, with plenty of cake for all but one of +us." +</P> + +<P> +They would have liked to stay a long time, for Rod and Vernon were very +kind and amusing, but Janet had Hester on her mind, left alone in the +Slowcoach; and so directly tea was finished they said good-bye. +</P> + +<P> +When Hester was told about their adventure, she said: "How silly you +all are!" +</P> + +<P> +"Why?" they asked indignantly. +</P> + +<P> +"For two reasons," said Hester. "One is that it is, of course, 'fresh +woods.' Anyone ought to know that. And the other is that we've got the +'Blue Poetry Book' with it in here in the caravan." +</P> + +<P> +"That doesn't matter," said Gregory. "We met a jolly decent clergyman." +</P> + +<P> +What Hester's great business had been Janet soon learned, for as soon +as they were alone Hester slipped some sheets of paper into Janet's +hand and asked her to read them very privately. Janet retired to the +boudoir end of the caravan and read. It was a poem entitled: +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + ODE TO THE REV. FRANCIS GASTREEE<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + (Dedicated to Mr. Nicholas Imber)<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + O thou most base,<BR> + Who hadst possession of the dwelling-place<BR> + Of William Shakespeare, Stratford's loveliest son,<BR> + What is it thou hast done?<BR> + Thou shouldst have treasur'd it, as in a case<BR> + We keep a diamond or other jewel.<BR> + Instead of which thou didst it quite erase,<BR> + O wicked man, O fool!<BR> + What should be done to thee?<BR> + Hang'ed upon a tree?<BR> + Or in the pillory<BR> + Placed for all to pelt with eggs and bitter zest?<BR> + Aye, that were best.<BR> + Would that thou wert i' th' pillory this moment<BR> + And Stratford all in foment,<BR> + Thou knave, thou cad,<BR> + Thou everything that's bad!<BR> +</P> + +<P CLASS="poem"> + HESTER MARGARET AVORY.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +Janet said it was splendid, after you had got hold of the difficult +rhyming idea. +</P> + +<P> +"That's because it's an ode," said Hester. "Odes go like that. All +jumpy. And you mustn't say 'you' in an ode. You must say 'thou."' +</P> + +<P> +"But what shall you do with it?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I want to send it to Mr. Imber," said Hester. "He said something ought +to be done. He gave me his address; do you think we could post it this +evening?" +</P> + +<P> +Janet said they could, and they walked to the post-office and sent it +off, together with a letter to Mrs. Avory, and picture postcards for +Runcie and Collins. The budget for X. they kept, as they had not +brought his address with them. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap21"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 21 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +COLLINS'S PEOPLE +</H3> + +<P> +They resumed their journey the next morning, a little depressed in +spirits, for the end was so near. It was now Monday, and they had to be +home again—that is to say, in their home without wheels—to-morrow +night, and the thought was not exhilarating. Moreover, as Robert's +compass only too plainly showed, they were now for the first time since +they started moving due east, or towards Chiswick, instead of away from +it, as theretofore. +</P> + +<P> +Holidays of a fortnight always go faster in the second week than the +first; but the last two days absolutely fly. +</P> + +<P> +They were now bound for Faringdon through Fairford; and the night—the +last night—was to be spent, if possible, on the farm of Collins's +brother, near Lechlade. +</P> + +<P> +At Fairford they had their lunch and explored the church, which is one +of the most remarkable in England. It was built, they learned from +Robert's "Road Book," by a rich merchant in the reign of Henry VII. +named John Tame. Being something of a privateer too, he had the good +fortune to capture a vessel on its way from Belgium to Italy laden with +stained glass, and, having secured this booty, he erected the church in +order to make use of it. +</P> + +<P> +Horace admired this story immensely, and set John Tame with his other +heroes—Raffles and Robin Hood—forthwith. +</P> + +<P> +Then came the hunt for Lycett's Farm, where Collins's people now lived, +of which they knew no more than that Lechlade was the postal address. +It might be this side of Lechlade, and it might be far on the other. +Collins had had the map placed before her, but could make nothing of +it. (Cooks never can read maps.) +</P> + +<P> +After about two miles out of Fairford Robert began to ask. There were +no people on the road—indeed, one of the things that they had noticed +throughout their travels was how few persons were to be met; and they +had therefore to knock at a door here and there, or approach labourers +in the fields. Their ignorance of the name either of Lycett's or of +Collins was amazing. +</P> + +<P> +"Never heard tell of such a place," said one. +</P> + +<P> +"Not hereabouts," said another. +</P> + +<P> +"Collins?" said a third. "There's a stone-mason of that name over at +Highworth; but I don't know of no farmer." +</P> + +<P> +"Maybe you're thinking of Sadler's," another suggested. +</P> + +<P> +Robert, who was getting testy, asked why. "Sadler's doesn't sound a bit +either like Collins or Lycett's," he said. +</P> + +<P> +"No," the man agreed, "it doesn't." +</P> + +<P> +But at last a butcher's boy on a bicycle came along, and Janet stopped +him. +</P> + +<P> +"Lycett's?" he said. Then he brightened. "Lickets, perhaps you mean. +That's up the next turning to the left. I don't know who's got it, +because I'm a stranger here, but I've heard that Lickets lies that way." +</P> + +<P> +So Robert was recalled from a distant meadow where he had seen a man +working, and they hurried on. +</P> + +<P> +The turning was not a main road, but a long lane, which was so narrow +that nothing else could possibly have passed by had they met anything; +and for a while nothing did come. And then suddenly at a bend there was +a fat farmer driving a dogcart straight at them. +</P> + +<P> +He pulled up at once, and roared out: "Where be you coming to, then? We +don't want no gipsies here." +</P> + +<P> +Kink stopped too, and the farmer and he glared at each other. +</P> + +<P> +"You must back down to the next gate," said the farmer. +</P> + +<P> +"Back yourself," said Kink. "Your load's lighter than mine." +</P> + +<P> +"But it's my land you're on," said the farmer. +</P> + +<P> +"It's a public road," said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +It looked as though they might stay there for ever, but suddenly the +farmer began to laugh. "Why, you're not gipsies," he said. "I believe +you're Avories." +</P> + +<P> +"That's so," said Kink. +</P> + +<P> +"Well, I'm blessed!" the farmer cried. "And to think we should be +falling out when I've been waiting to see you these many days! My +name's Pescod. My halfsister's your cook." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Pescod climbed out of his cart and shook hands with all the +children. "Now I'll turn," he said, with a smile to Kink, and he led +his horse up the lane, talking all the while, while the Slowcoach +followed. They told him about their difficulty in finding any trace of +him, and he called Collins a donkey for not directing them better, and +forgetting to say that her name and his were different. +</P> + +<P> +"Never mind," he said; "here you are at last. We've been looking out +for you for a long time. My missis never hears wheels nowadays but what +she runs to the door to see if it's you." +</P> + +<P> +Lycett's farm was a long, low, white house with a yew hedge leading +from the garden gate to the front door. This hedge, of which Collins +had told them, was famous in the neighbourhood; for it was enormously +old, and as thick almost as masonry, and it was kept so carefully +clipped that it was as smooth also as a wall. At the gate itself the +yews were cut into tall pillars with a pheasant at the top of each, and +then there were smaller pillars at intervals all the way up the path, +about twenty yards, with a thick joining band of yew between them. They +were so massive that very little light could get into the front windows +or the doorway; but, as Mr. Pescod said, "anyone can have light, few +yew hedges like that in the world." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Pescod was a comfortable, smiling woman whose one idea was that +everyone must either be hungry or in need of feeding up. All of the +children in turn she looked at anxiously, saying that she was sure that +they had not had enough to eat. As a matter of fact, they had not +perhaps eaten as much as they would have done at Chiswick, and they +had, of course, worked harder; but they were all very well, and said +so. But it made no difference to Mrs. Pescod. +</P> + +<P> +"Ah, my dear," she said to Janet, "you're pale. I shouldn't like you to +go back to your ma looking like that. No, while you're here you must +have three good meals. A good tea, and a good supper, and a good +breakfast. I wish you'd stay longer, and let me have a real go at you; +but if you can't, you can't, and there's an end of it." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Pescod's notion of a good tea was terrific. Eggs for everyone to +begin with (to Gregory's great pleasure, for an egg with his tea was +almost his favourite treat). Freshly baked hot cakes soaking in butter. +Hot toast. Three kinds of jam. Bread and butter. Watercress. Mustard +and cress. This was at five o'clock, and as supper was at half-past +eight, Janet urged the others to explore as much as possible, or they +would have no appetite, and then Mrs. Pescod would be miserable. +</P> + +<P> +It was a delightful farm. There was everything that one wants in a +farm,—a pond with ducks; a haystack half cut, so that one might jump +about on it; straw ricks on stone posts; cowsheds smelling so warm and +friendly, with swallows darting in and out of the doorway to their +nests in the roof; stables with gentle horses who ate the green stuff +you gave them without biting you; guinea-pigs, the property of Master +Walter Pescod, who was a weekly boarder at Cirencester; fantail +pigeons; bantams; ferrets, very frightening to everyone but Kink, who +knew just how to hold them; and a turnip-slicer, which Gregory turned +for some time, munching turnip all the while. +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Pescod led the girls round with her on an egg-hunt, which is +always one of the most interesting expeditions in life; and Mr. Pescod, +as the evening drew on, allowed the boys to accompany him with his gun +to get a rabbit or two under the hedge, and he permitted Jack to fire +it off. Nothing happened except that Jack was nearly knocked backwards +by the "kick"; but he was very proud of the bruise, and when he +returned to Chiswick showed it to his father and to William in triumph. +</P> + +<P> +It was getting purple then, with green edges, and Dr. Rotheram +pronounced it one of the best bruises he had ever seen. "Good enough," +he said, "to have killed a lion with." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said William, "instead of missing a rabbit." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Pescod, of course, wanted the children to sleep indoors, but they +would not. "It is our very last night in the caravan," said Janet, "and +we couldn't give it up." So Mrs. Pescod instead made them promise to +come to breakfast, and gave them each a large cake of her own making in +case they felt hungry in the night. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap22"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 22 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE ADVENTURE OF THE GIANT +</H3> + +<P> +After receiving a thousand messages for Collins, both affectionate and +jocular—one from Mr. Pescod being on no account to forget to tell her +to try anti-fat—they said good-bye to these kind folk and marched into +Faringdon the next morning, very sorry it was the last, but determined +to make a brave show. Through watery Lechdale they went, over the Isis +(as the Thames is called here), and past Buscot. +</P> + +<P> +It was just after leaving Buscot that Gregory, who had been ahead +alone, suddenly rushed back in a wild state of excitement. +</P> + +<P> +"What do you think I've seen?" he panted. "A giant! A real live giant!" +</P> + +<P> +"Don't be an ass!" said Jack +</P> + +<P> +"But I have," he protested—"I have. He's there in that wood, kneeling +by the stream, washing his face. I watched him walk to it. He's +enormous! He's as tall as this caravan nearly. Do come and peep at him." +</P> + +<P> +They all very readily accompanied Gregory into the wood, and there, +sure enough, was a giant, combing his hair. +</P> + +<P> +He heard them coming, and looked round. They stopped, open-eyed and +openmouthed. +</P> + +<P> +"Here, I say," the giant said at last, "this won't do. You mustn't look +at me like that—free. It's a penny each, you know." +</P> + +<P> +He had a broad Yorkshire accent and a kind face. +</P> + +<P> +"Where do you come from?" he asked. +</P> + +<P> +"We come from London," said Janet. "We are on a caravan journey." +</P> + +<P> +"A caravan journey," said the giant. "So am I. I always am, in fact." +</P> + +<P> +"Are you?" said Gregory. "How splendid!" +</P> + +<P> +"Splendid!" said the giant. "Do you think so? I'd give a good deal to +sleep in a bed in a house. Excuse me if I sit down," he added. "My legs +aren't very strong." +</P> + +<P> +He sat down, but even then he was taller than any of the children. +</P> + +<P> +"Where is your caravan?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"Just over there," the giant said. "They're waiting for me. I came here +to make my toilet. Where are you going?" +</P> + +<P> +"We're going to Faringdon," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"That's where we've come from," said the giant. "There's been a fair +there. We're going to Cirencester." +</P> + +<P> +"What a shame!" said Horace. "That means we've missed you." +</P> + +<P> +"But you're seeing me now," said the giant, adding again, with his +Yorkshire laugh, "free." +</P> + +<P> +"I know," said Jack, "but that's not the same as at a fair. The naphtha +lamps, you know." +</P> + +<P> +The giant shuddered. "I like to be away from them," he said. +</P> + +<P> +"Who else is there with you?" asked Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"The King," said the giant. +</P> + +<P> +"The King!" they all exclaimed. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, King Pip. He's a dwarf. We travel together, but we show +separately. A penny each." +</P> + +<P> +"Might we see him if we paid a penny?" Janet asked. +</P> + +<P> +"I shouldn't if I were you," said the giant. +</P> + +<P> +"Why not?" said Gregory. "Isn't he nice?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the giant very firmly. "He's not; he's nasty." +</P> + +<P> +"I'm so sorry," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"So am I," said the giant. +</P> + +<P> +"I've always liked giants best," said Mary. +</P> + +<P> +"But why don't you leave him?" said Jack. +</P> + +<P> +"I can't," said the giant. "We don't belong to ourselves. We belong to +Mr. Kite. Mr. Kite is the showman." +</P> + +<P> +"And did you sell yourself to him like a slave?" Hester asked. +</P> + +<P> +The giant laughed. "Very much like a slave," he said. "You see, there's +nothing else to do when you're big like me and have no money. I'm too +weak to work, and it's ridiculous, too. No one ought to be so big. So I +must do what I can." +</P> + +<P> +"What's the matter with King Pip?" Robert asked. +</P> + +<P> +"He's selfish and bad-tempered," said the giant. "He thinks it's a fine +thing to be so small." +</P> + +<P> +"And you think it a fine thing to be so big, don't you?" said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +The giant opened his blue eyes. "I! Not me. I'd give everything I ever +possessed to be five feet seven instead of seven feet five. It's never +done me any good." +</P> + +<P> +"But it's rather grand to be as big as that," Robert suggested. +</P> + +<P> +"Grand! You may have the grandeur. It's worse than being a criminal. I +can't walk out unless it's pitch dark or very early morning, because if +I did the people would see me free—as you are doing—I have to live in +a narrow stuffy carriage. I'm ill, too. Giants are always ill." +</P> + +<P> +Janet was full of sympathy. "We're so sorry," she said. "And here's our +money—it isn't fair to be seeing you free." And she held out sixpence. +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, no," said the giant. "I didn't mean that. I like to see you and +talk. There's too few people to talk to naturally. Most of them ask +silly questions all the time, especially the doctors. If you want to +pay to see me, you must come to the fair. I shall be on view to-night." +</P> + +<P> +"But we're going the other way," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"I'm very sorry," said the giant. "I should have looked forward to +seeing you." +</P> + +<P> +"What's your name?" Gregory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"My real name is William Steward," said the giant, "but they call me +the Human Colossus." +</P> + +<P> +"Is there anything we could do for you?" +</P> + +<P> +Janet asked. "We have some papers; would you like them?" +</P> + +<P> +"No," said the giant; "I don't read much. There is one thing I'd like, +but I don't suppose you have it. A little tobacco. I'm clean out of it, +and I'd like a smoke." +</P> + +<P> +"We've got tobacco all right," said Robert. "You know," he added to +Janet, "in that tin labelled 'For—'" +</P> + +<P> +But Janet stopped him in time, and drew him aside. "Run and get it," +she said; "but be sure to scrape the label off. He wouldn't like to see +'For Tramps and Gipsies' on it." +</P> + +<P> +Robert was quickly back, and handed the tin to the giant, who was +delighted. +</P> + +<P> +He was just beginning his thanks when a shrill whistle sounded, and he +said good-bye instead. +</P> + +<P> +"That's His Majesty," he explained. "He thinks I've been long enough. +And I am long enough," he added, making his only joke—"too long. Well, +good-bye. I'm glad to have met you. Don't forget to look for the Human +Colossus whenever you come to a fair. It's easy to remember the Human +Colossus. Good-bye." +</P> + +<P> +And he shambled off through the trees to the road. +</P> + +<P> +They had their last lunch with Kink just outside Faringdon's red town, +and then sped him on his solitary way home, promising, however, to come +and meet him somewhere outside London in three or four days' time; and +so they stood in a group in the middle of the road until the Slowcoach +and its driver and its black guardian were out of sight. And if some of +their eyes were not quite dry, I am sure you don't blame them. +</P> + +<P> +"Now," said Robert, as he made a note of what his pedometer +said—sixty-seven miles and a quarter, for he considered this the end +of the real walk—"now for the station." +</P> + +<P> +First, however, a telegram had to go, and Hester insisted on sending +it, as she had an idea, and this is what she sent: +</P> + +<P> +"Avory, The Gables, Chiswick. Alas! alack! we're coming back." +</P> + +<P> +They caught a train on the funny little branch-line which turned them +out at Uffington, and, armed with Mr. Scott's present, "The Scouring of +the White Horse," which Mary carried and occasionally read scraps from +as they walked along, they made for the green hills and the famous +animal cut on their side. To reach it was impossible, for the London +train left at 6.24, and it was now nearly three, and there was tea to +be eaten; but they came near enough to see it distinctly, and to marvel +that the name of horse should ever have been given to it. As Gregory +said, "It's no more like a horse than Shakespeare is like a swan." +</P> + +<P> +And then they had tea at a nice inn at Uffington, in a parlour full of +photograph frames, and returned to the station. +</P> + +<P> +As the train left, they leaned back in their seats, a great deal more +tired than they had ever been in the Slowcoach. +</P> + +<P> +"What a hateful rate this train goes at!" said Robert. "I prefer two +miles an hour." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, yes," they said. +</P> + +<P> +At Paddington they found Collins and Eliza Pollard, with a station +omnibus, and they rattled down to Chiswick, pouring out the news, +especially that from Lycett's farm. +</P> + +<P> +And so, after dropping Mary and Jack and Horace at their homes, they +came once again to "The Gables." A cold supper was waiting for +them—one of those nice late meals after a journey—and Mrs. Avory and +Runcie sat with them while they ate it. +</P> + +<P> +"You must be glad to be back," Runcie said, "and to sleep in nice beds +once more." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, Runcie," said Hester, "you don't really understand anything." +</P> + +<P> +"I understand what King Edward's head is like on a shilling," said +Runcie, with a little twinkle at Janet. +</P> + +<P> +Janet blushed. +</P> + +<P> +"What a shame," she said, "to tell that story! Hester, I suppose that +was you, in one of your letters." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Hester; "but, Janet darling, you told me always to tell all +the news." +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap23"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 23 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE MOST SURPRISING ADVENTURE OF ALL +</H3> + +<P> +The children had been back two or three days, and Kink was still on the +road, when one morning a telegram came from him saying that he had +reached Hounslow, and Robert asked if they might all walk out to meet +him, and so return home triumphantly in a body. Mrs. Avory agreed, and +they trooped off, after the briefest lunch, taking Horace Campbell and +the Rotherams with them. +</P> + +<P> +They had been gone two or three hours, and Mrs. Avory was sitting +talking with Runcie, when Eliza Pollard brought a card on the brass +tray that Janet had repoussed for her mother's last Christmas present. +It ran: +</P> + +<P CLASS="noindent"> + MR. HENRY AMORY<BR> + The Red House,<BR> + Chiswick, W.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"I don't know him," said Mrs. Avory. "What is he like?" +</P> + +<P> +"Well, mum," said Eliza Pollard, "he's a short gentleman with a red +face and two boys, and he seems very angry." +</P> + +<P> +"Ask him what he wants to see me about," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +"I did," said Eliza Pollard, "and he said he could not tell me, but the +matter was of the highest importance." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory took the card and descended to the drawing-room, where the +visitors were waiting for her. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Amory bowed. "Pardon me, madam," he said, "but I have come to know +what you have done with my caravan." +</P> + +<P> +"Your caravan!" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, madam, my caravan. A caravan was sent as a present to my sons +some three weeks or a month ago, and your family, I am creditably +informed, seized and detained it." +</P> + +<P> +"Excuse me," said Mrs. Avory, "but we did nothing of the sort. A +caravan was sent here for my children as a present, and we have simply +made use of it. They have been away in it for a fortnight. It returns +to-day!" +</P> + +<P> +"Ha!" said Mr. Amory. "Perhaps you will have the goodness to inform me +who gave it to you?" +</P> + +<P> +"That," said Mrs. Avory, "I can't do—" +</P> + +<P> +"Ha!" said Mr. Amory. +</P> + +<P> +"—because," Mrs. Avory continued, "I don't know. We have never +discovered. The giver wished to be anonymous." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Amory looked surprised, and became a shade less fierce. +</P> + +<P> +"You took no steps to find out?" he asked. +</P> + +<P> +"How could I? There was no clue to go upon." +</P> + +<P> +"I see, I see," said Mr. Amory. "There has been a huge mistake. Perhaps +you will allow me to read you a letter which we received a day or so +ago: +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"'DEAR CHILDREN, +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"'I have just come back, much sooner than I expected; but, finding no +letter from you, I have made some inquiries as to what you have done +with the caravan, and, to my amazement, cannot discover that it has +ever reached you at all; and since, if it has not, this letter must be +all Greek to you, I may now say that on the 23rd of June a caravan +fully furnished for a journey should have arrived at your house with a +letter saying it was from your friend X., as it amused me to call +myself. I have been to the man whom I employed to take it to you, but +he is in hospital. His wife, however, is convinced that he did take it +to Chiswick all right. Please ask your father to try to discover to +what house it was sent. Tomorrow evening I shall come to see you all. +</P> + +<P CLASS="letter"> +"'Your affectionate<BR> + UNCLE EUSTACE.<BR> +</P> + +<BR> + +<P> +"There," said Mr. Amory, "you see. Not, however, that I should have let +my sons go away in it—at any rate, without me"—the two little boys +winced—"but different people have different ideas. Well," he +continued, "I have been investigating, and of course I soon discovered +that the caravan had come here, and that your children had gone off in +it. I will admit that we have only just come to Chiswick, and that you +were better known here; but the fact remains that the letter was +addressed, not to the name of Avory, but Amory." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory was bewildered. "It is all very unexpected," she said. "I +really cannot remember reading the address on the envelope at all. It +was handed to me as mine, and I opened it. It may have been Amory. If +you care to see the letter, I have it." +</P> + +<P> +"Please," said Mr. Amory; and Mrs. Avory went to her desk. +</P> + +<P> +"Now, boys, listen to me," said Mr. Amory to his two sons. "Let this be +a lesson to you. Never give anonymous presents. It is foolish, and it +leads to trouble; and very likely the wrong person will be thanked." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory handed him the letter, and he read it. +</P> + +<P> +"Quite clear," he said, "but not what I call a sensible way of doing +things. Your explanation satisfies me." +</P> + +<P> +Mrs. Avory expressed her regret that the mistake had occurred. "But," +she added, "you must allow that we had no other course than to accept +the present as though it really belonged to us. We have for so many +years been the only Avories here." +</P> + +<P> +"But have you so many friends," Mr. Amory inquired, "who would be +likely to give you anonymously so handsome a gift? It did not strike +you as strange?" +</P> + +<P> +"Certainly not," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Amory again said "Ha!" +</P> + +<P> +"The caravan," Mrs. Avory resumed, rising to her feet, "shall be put in +order directly it returns, and sent to your address. Anything that has +been taken from it or broken shall be replaced. I can say no more than +that. Good afternoon." +</P> + +<P> +It was not, however, the end of the visit, for at that instant the +sound of heavy wheels was heard, and cheers in the street, and, looking +out of the window, Mrs. Avory saw that the Slowcoach had already +arrived, escorted (as it had left) by all the children of Chiswick, and +a moment later Janet burst into the room, crying, "Mother, do come and +see!" +</P> + +<P> +She pulled up stiff on observing the strangers. +</P> + +<P> +"Janet, dear," said Mrs. Avory, "there has been a serious mistake. The +Slowcoach is not ours at all. It belongs to this gentleman's children." +</P> + +<P> +Janet gasped. "But it was sent to us," she said at last. +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Mr. Amory; "I beg your pardon, young lady, but it was sent +to us. It came to you in error." +</P> + +<P> +Janet looked questioningly at her mother, and Mrs. Avory nodded yes. +Hester and Gregory now entered the room to insist on their mother +either coming out or giving leave for some of the street children to be +allowed to go inside the caravan. But Mr. Amory interposed. "No," he +said. "I prefer not. They are rarely clean." +</P> + +<P> +Gregory looked at him in dismay. +</P> + +<P> +"Mother!" he exclaimed. +</P> + +<P> +"Janet," whispered Mrs. Avory, who knew her youngest son, "take Gregory +away, and keep him out of sight till they go." +</P> + +<P> +"But we," Mr. Amory resumed, "will examine the caravan. I suppose there +was no inventory." +</P> + +<P> +"No," said Mrs. Avory. +</P> + +<P> +"Very unfortunate," he muttered, "and very unsystematic. However, we +must hope for the best;" and so saying he led the way toward the yard, +with his meek little sons, who had said not a word, but appeared to +wish themselves well out of the affair, behind him. +</P> + +<P> +Kink had already unharnessed Moses, and the Slowcoach stood at rest. +Mr. Amory first went to examine a place on the wheel where a gate-post +had removed some of the paint, and he then put a foot on the step; but +Diogenes sprang up and growled so seriously that he withdrew. +</P> + +<P> +"Please remove the dog," he said. +</P> + +<P> +While this was being done, and the father and his two sons were inside, +Janet explained the situation to the others. They refused at first to +believe it. +</P> + +<P> +"Do you mean to say," Robert exclaimed, "that the Slowcoach isn't ours +at all?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +"It belongs to those measly pip-squeaks?" said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Janet. +</P> + +<P> +Robert held his head in a kind of stupor. +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR> + +<A NAME="chap24"></A> +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +CHAPTER 24 +</H3> + +<H3 ALIGN="center"> +THE END +</H3> + +<P> +They had a very solemn tea. Everyone was depressed and mortified. +</P> + +<P> +"We couldn't help it, could we, mother?" Janet said several times. +</P> + +<P> +"Of course not," said Mrs. Avory. "It's no one's fault except the +foolish man who brought the caravan here. What has Kink said about it?" +But as no one had asked him, he was called to the cedar-tree, beneath +which tea was laid on fine days. +</P> + +<P> +"Here's a go, mum," he said. +</P> + +<P> +"What did the man say who brought the caravan?" Mrs. Avory said. +</P> + +<P> +"As near as I can remember he showed me the letter, and said, 'Is that +all right?' I looked at it, and read, 'To be given to Mrs. Avory' on +it, so I said, 'Yes,' Then he said, 'I've got a caravan for your lot, +cockie,' and backed it into the yard." +</P> + +<P> +"How splendid!" said Robert. "Then it was you who did it, Kinky?" +</P> + +<P> +"Did what, Master Robert?" +</P> + +<P> +"Got us the Slowcoach; because the address wasn't Mrs. Avory at all; it +was Mrs. Amory." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh, I don't take much count about m's or v's," said Kink. "It began +with a big 'A,' and it ended in 'ory,' and that was good enough for me." +</P> + +<P> +"Kink," said Janet, "you're a dear. You've given us the most beautiful +holiday." +</P> + +<P> +Hester suddenly turned pale. "Mother!" she exclaimed, "what about the +twenty-five sovereigns?" +</P> + +<P> +"Yes," said Robert, "that's awful!" +</P> + +<P> +"It is rather bad," said Mrs. Avory, "because, of course, it will have +to be given back, and at once too, and I'm not at all rich just now. +I'm not even sure that we have any right to go to Sea View, and the +twenty-five pounds will just spoil everything." +</P> + +<P> +"Why should we give it back?" said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Because it's not ours," said Mrs. Avory. "There's no question at all." +</P> + +<P> +"I think Kinky ought to pay it," said Gregory. "He's got heaps of money +in the Post-Office, and it's his fault, too." +</P> + +<P> +"The best thing to do," said Mrs. Avory, "is to telephone to Uncle +Christopher and tell him all about it, and ask him to come over +to-night and give us his advice. He always knows best." +</P> + +<P> +"And Mr. Scott and Mr. Lenox, too," said Robert. +</P> + +<P> +"Very well," said Mrs. Avory. "They were all here at the beginning, and +they had better be here at the end." +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Lenox, who came first, was immensely tickled. "Who stole the +caravan?" he asked at intervals through the evening. +</P> + +<P> +Mr. Scott took it more practically. "We must have another," he said, +"and have it built to our own design. Let the Slowcoach provide the +ground-plan, so to speak, and then improve on it by the light of your +experience. You must by this time each know of certain little defects +in the Slowcoach that could easily be done away with." +</P> + +<P> +"Of course," said Robert. "Blisters." +</P> + +<P> +"Don't rot," said Gregory. "I know of something, Mr. Scott. The roof. +It ought to have a felt covering, so as to soften the rain." +</P> + +<P> +"Exactly," said Mr. Scott. "And you, Janet?" +</P> + +<P> +"I used to wonder," said Janet, "if there could not be some poles, such +as those that you raise carriage-wheels with when you wash them, to +lift the caravan above its springs at night. As it is, every movement +makes it shake or rock. They could be carried underneath quite easily." +</P> + +<P> +"Very good," said Mr. Scott. "And you, +</P> + +<P> +"I heard about a caravan yesterday," said Mary, "that had two little +swings at the back for small children when they were tired." +</P> + +<P> +"That's a good idea," said Mr. Lenox. "For Gregory, for instance." +</P> + +<P> +"I'm not a small child," said Gregory, "and I don't get tired." +</P> + +<P> +"Oh," said Janet, "what about those times when you said you couldn't +walk at all?" +</P> + +<P> +"Shut up," said Gregory. +</P> + +<P> +"Very well, then," said Mr. Scott; "if you really are still keen on +caravaning, I'll give you a new one, with proper title-deeds, in case +any new Mr. Amory turns up, and we will all superintend its building." +</P> + +<P> +"Hurrah!" cried the children. +</P> + +<P> +"And we'll call it Slowcoach the Second." It was at this point that +Uncle Christopher came in. +</P> + +<P> +"This is very sad," he said. "To think of my nephews and nieces running +off with another person's caravan!" +</P> + +<P> +"But what shall we do?" Mrs. Avory asked. +</P> + +<P> +"There's nothing to do," said Uncle Christopher, "but to have it +cleaned up and put in order as soon as possible, and sent round to its +real owner." +</P> + +<P> +"The dreadful thing," said Janet, "is the twenty-five pounds." +</P> + +<P> +"Yes, I know," said Uncle Christopher; "but I believe there's a way out +of even that difficulty. I told your aunt all about it when I got back +from the office, and she wished me to tell you that she would like to +refund the twenty-five pounds herself." +</P> + +<P> +There was a long pause. +</P> + +<P> +"O dear," said Janet at last, as she hid her face in her mother's arms, +"everybody is much too kind." +</P> + +<BR><BR><BR><BR> + + + + + + + + +<pre> + + + + + +End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Slowcoach, by E. V. Lucas + +*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE SLOWCOACH *** + +***** This file should be named 2086-h.htm or 2086-h.zip ***** +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: + https://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/8/2086/ + + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at +https://gutenberg.org/license). + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org. + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at +https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at +809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email +business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact +information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official +page at https://pglaf.org + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit https://pglaf.org + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including including checks, online payments and credit card +donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + https://www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. + + +</pre> + +</BODY> + +</HTML> + + |
